Selected quad for the lemma: word_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
word_n church_n true_a visible_a 12,702 5 9.3716 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A22474 The badges of Christianity. Or, A treatise of the sacraments fully declared out of the word of God Wherein the truth it selfe is proued, the doctrine of the reformed churches maintained, and the errors of the churches of Rome are euidently conuinced: by pervsing wherof the discreet reader may easily perceiue, the weak and vnstable grounds of the Roman religion, and the iust causes of our lawfull separation. Diuided into three bookes: 1. Of the sacraments in generall. 2. Of Baptisme. 3. Of the Lords Supper. Hereunto is annexed a corollarie or necessary aduertisement, shewing the intention of this present worke, opening the differences among vs about the question of the supper, discouering the idolatry and diuisions of the popish clergy, ... By William Attersoll, minister of the Word of God. Attersoll, William, d. 1640.; Attersoll, William, d. 1640. Principles of Christian religion. aut 1606 (1606) STC 889; ESTC S115827 366,439 472

There are 50 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

article_n of_o faith_n but_o seal_v up_o such_o as_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o word_n second_o although_o god_n use_v they_o as_o instrument_n of_o his_o grace_n yet_o the_o especial_a work_n and_o forcible_a power_n of_o they_o be_v not_o in_o they_o but_o depend_v on_o god_n alone_o so_o that_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o whosoever_o partake_v they_o be_v partaker_n of_o grace_n salvation_n for_o givenesse_n of_o sin_n and_o everlasting_a glory_n but_o the_o virtue_n of_o they_o flow_v from_o he_o only_o as_o from_o a_o fountain_n a_o man_n may_v hear_v the_o word_n and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n and_o be_v never_o the_o better_a except_o god_n change_v the_o mind_n open_v the_o heart_n enlighten_v the_o understanding_n cleanse_v the_o conscience_n and_o sanctify_v the_o affection_n to_o his_o glory_n three_o as_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n profit_v nothing_o unless_o it_o be_v understand_v apply_v and_o receive_v but_o 1._o tend_v to_o judgement_n so_o the_o sacrament_n except_o we_o bring_v the_o hand_n of_o faith_n with_o we_o can_v give_v we_o faith_n nor_o grace_n but_o tend_v to_o our_o condemnation_n yet_o as_o the_o gospel_n be_v always_o the_o savour_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n of_o it_o own_o nature_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d word_n lively_a and_o of_o comfortable_a operation_n howsoever_o the_o unfaithful_a turn_n it_o to_o be_v the_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n so_o the_o sacrament_n cease_v not_o in_o themselves_o to_o be_v true_a sacrament_n although_o they_o be_v administer_v by_o unworthy_a minister_n and_o receive_v by_o unsaithfull_a people_n for_o man_n wickedness_n can_v pervert_v much_o less_o evert_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n ordinance_n last_o as_o the_o best_a seed_n spring_v not_o up_o and_o bring_v not_o fruit_n so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v sow_v but_o lie_v a_o time_n cover_v in_o the_o earth_n to_o take_v root_a so_o the_o fruit_n reap_v by_o the_o word_n and_o benefit_n receive_v by_o the_o sacrament_n present_o appear_v not_o but_o grow_v and_o increase_v at_o the_o time_n appoint_v of_o god_n who_o will_v bless_v they_o in_o his_o elect_a at_o what_o season_n himself_o have_v ordain_v thus_o we_o see_v what_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n have_v in_o common_a both_o be_v instrument_n of_o the_o same_o grace_n both_o have_v their_o benefit_n blessing_n and_o force_n depend_v on_o god_n both_o require_v faith_n to_o be_v mingle_v with_o they_o without_o which_o they_o be_v unprofitable_a and_o last_o they_o profit_v not_o by_o and_o by_o at_o the_o same_o moment_n they_o be_v publish_v administer_v hear_v or_o receive_v but_o god_n afterward_o work_v oftentime_o by_o they_o in_o his_o child_n to_o their_o great_a comfort_n when_o all_o fruit_n to_o come_v by_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v bury_v the_o disciple_n at_o the_o first_o understand_v no_o more_o of_o christ_n resurrection_n then_o the_o unbelieve_a jew_n when_o he_o say_v 3_o destroy_v 19_o this_o temple_n and_o i_o will_v build_v it_o again_o in_o three_o day_n but_o they_o lay_v it_o up_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o long_o afterward_o remember_v the_o word_n he_o speak_v unto_o they_o so_o when_o they_o see_v christ_n ride_v to_o hcirusalem_n the_o multitude_n spread_v their_o garment_n in_o the_o way_n and_o cut_v down_o branch_n 8_o from_o the_o tree_n the_o 〈◊〉_d move_v and_o child_n cry_v in_o the_o temple_n hosanna_n the_o son_n of_o david_n they_o 16_o understand_v none_o of_o those_o thing_n at_o the_o first_o but_o when_o jesus_n be_v glorify_v then_o remember_v they_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v write_v of_o he_o and_o that_o they_o have_v do_v such_o thing_n unto_o he_o if_o then_o at_o the_o present_a time_n of_o our_o hear_n or_o receve_v we_o find_v not_o nor_o feel_v the_o fruit_n and_o comfort_n we_o desire_v let_v we_o not_o doubt_n &_o despair_n but_o wait_v on_o god_n who_o in_o his_o own_o appoint_a time_n will_v make_v his_o own_o ordinance_n available_a to_o all_o his_o servant_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v common_a to_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n in_o the_o next_o place_n let_v we_o see_v sacrament_n what_o they_o have_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a and_o so_o differ_v one_o from_o another_o first_o forasmuch_o as_o the_o sacrament_n be_v appurtenance_n and_o dependence_n to_o the_o word_n and_o be_v apply_v to_o this_o end_n to_o seal_v up_o our_o communion_n with_o christ_n and_o our_o fellowship_n one_o with_o another_o it_o appear_v that_o in_o man_n of_o ripe_a year_n the_o teach_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o word_n preach_v and_o the_o open_a confession_n and_o profession_n of_o faith_n do_v go_v before_o participation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o math._n 28._o 19_o go_v teach_v all_o nation_n that_o be_v make_v they_o disciple_n of_o christ_n give_v they_o to_o the_o faith_n as_o the_o o_o word_n signify_v and_o then_o baptise_v they_o thus_o philip_n matheteusate_fw-it teach_v the_o eunuch_n before_o he_o baptize_v he_o act._n 8._o to_o who_o when_o the_o eunuch_n say_v 36_o what_o let_v i_o to_o be_v baptize_v philip_n answer_v if_o thou_o believe_v with_o all_o thy_o hart_n thou_o may_v and_o he_o say_v i_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o act_n 10_o can_v any_o forbid_v water_n 47._o that_o these_o shall_v not_o be_v baptize_v which_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o well_o as_o we_o in_o deed_n touch_v child_n baptizme_n there_o be_v another_o especial_a respect_n to_o be_v have_v of_o which_o we_o shall_v speak_v 7._o afterward_o but_o touch_v other_o this_o be_v in_o difference_n between_o they_o that_o where_o as_o the_o word_n be_v offer_v even_o to_o such_o as_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n not_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o none_o exclude_v or_o debar_v from_o the_o hear_n of_o it_o whether_o believer_n or_o 24_o unbeliever_n holy_a or_o profane_a 1_o cor._n 14._o no_o person_n be_v a_o unbeliever_n or_o infidel_n be_v ever_o admit_v to_o the_o sacrament_n although_o he_o shall_v offer_v himself_o for_o that_o have_v be_v to_o give_v 6_o that_o which_o be_v holy_a to_o dog_n and_o to_o cast_v pearl_n before_o swine_n but_o such_o only_a as_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o faith_n &_o have_v make_v public_a confession_n thereof_o as_o member_n of_o the_o church_n an_o other_o difference_n be_v in_o the_o necessity_n end_n and_o use_v of_o the_o one_o and_o of_o the_o other_o the_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n and_o instrument_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o beget_v and_o begin_v faith_n in_o we_o except_o god_n do_v deal_v extraordinary_o which_o of_o we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v look_v for_o and_o none_o have_v entrance_n to_o christ_n but_o by_o faith_n so_o that_o man_n if_o they_o will_v be_v save_v must_v hear_v it_o but_o the_o sacrament_n be_v of_o another_o nature_n they_o can_v engender_v faith_n in_o we_o we_o must_v bring_v faith_n with_o we_o lest_o we_o partake_v they_o unworthy_o so_o that_o he_o which_o believe_v and_o can_v not_o come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n be_v yet_o partaker_n of_o salvation_n wherefore_o the_o necessity_n of_o they_o be_v not_o simple_o and_o absolute_o so_o great_a that_o without_o exception_n a_o man_n can_v be_v save_v without_o they_o for_o it_o be_v the_o contempt_n not_o the_o want_n of_o they_o that_o bring_v danger_n and_o damnation_n three_o it_o may_v sometime_o fall_v out_o that_o in_o a_o visible_a church_n the_o word_n preach_v may_v be_v find_v as_o a_o essential_a note_n of_o the_o church_n without_o the_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o be_v a_o true_a church_n of_o god_n so_o that_o the_o word_n may_v be_v without_o the_o sacrament_n but_o the_o sacrament_n can_v be_v without_o the_o word_n as_o a_o write_n may_v be_v without_o a_o seal_n but_o not_o the_o seal_n without_o the_o writing_n set_a a_o seal_n to_o a_o blank_a and_o be_v it_o not_o vain_a void_a and_o unprofitable_a last_o of_o all_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o word_n rouse_v and_o affect_v only_o one_o of_o the_o sense_n to_o wit_n the_o ear_n we_o fee_v it_o not_o we_o touch_v it_o not_o we_o handle_v it_o not_o only_o we_o hear_v the_o sound_n thereof_o but_o the_o sacrament_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o eye_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o ear_n so_o that_o we_o do_v even_o behold_v jesus_n christ_n as_o it_o be_v crucify_v before_o we_o nay_o they_o move_v &_o stir_v up_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o sense_n whereby_o we_o may_v understand_v what_o they_o bring_v &_o how_o they_o avail_v unto_o our_o faith_n make_v we_o after_o a_o sort_n to_o handle_v christ_n with_o our_o hand_n to_o see_v he_o with_o our_o eye_n to_o taste_v he_o and_o touch_v he_o with_o our_o whole_a
god_n as_o also_o the_o gross_a error_n and_o palpable_a heresy_n maintain_v by_o antichrist_n and_o his_o adherent_n with_o sundry_a other_o point_n of_o doctrine_n serve_v to_o teach_v to_o convince_v to_o correct_v and_o to_o instruct_v in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o be_v several_o discuss_v and_o large_o handle_v in_o the_o treatise_n follow_v all_o which_o for_o special_a cause_n and_o consideration_n i_o here_o offer_v unto_o your_o worship_n and_o puplish_v under_o the_o shield_n and_o shadow_n of_o your_o patronage_n in_o respect_n of_o your_o wor_n in_o respect_n of_o myself_o and_o in_o respect_n of_o other_o of_o which_o three_o somewhat_o i_o will_v say_v brief_o first_o because_o it_o be_v the_o sum_n and_o substance_n of_o 〈◊〉_d sermon_n deliver_v upon_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o ten_o chap._n of_o the_o former_a epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n you_o vouchsafe_v to_o be_v a_o hearer_n thereof_o for_o as_o god_n have_v give_v i_o my_o calling_n where_o your_o wor._n have_v your_o dwell_n so_o by_o your_o own_o presence_n and_o good_a example_n attend_v to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n as_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n you_o have_v countenance_v and_o encourage_v many_o other_o who_o praise_n be_v in_o the_o church_n to_o come_v into_o the_o holy_a assembly_n of_o the_o saint_n with_o reverence_n and_o with_o the_o affection_n of_o jacoh_n who_o fear_v and_o say_v 28_o how_o fearful_a be_v this_o place_n this_o be_v none_o other_o but_o the_o house_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n this_o be_v the_o way_n to_o true_a worship_n to_o attend_v to_o his_o word_n which_o he_o have_v magnify_v 138_o above_o all_o name_n this_o be_v the_o path_n that_o lead_v to_o true_a honour_n to_o follow_v the_o footstep_n of_o virtue_n as_o the_o heathen_a 〈◊〉_d in_o one_o of_o his_o satyr_n 2_o tota_n licet_fw-la veteres_fw-la exornent_fw-la undique_fw-la cerae_fw-la atria_fw-la nobilit_fw-la as_o sola_fw-la est_fw-la at_z que_fw-fr unica_fw-la virtus_fw-la this_o the_o gentile_n by_o the_o divine_a spirit_n and_o light_n of_o nature_n see_v &_o hereunto_o give_v witness_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o the_o prophet_n declare_v to_o eli_n 2_o they_o that_o honour_v i_o i_o will_v honour_v and_o they_o that_o despise_v i_o shall_v be_v despise_v vouchsafe_v therefore_o now_o to_o hear_v i_o writing_n who_o before_o you_o hear_v speak_v and_o it_o be_v my_o earnest_a desire_n that_o all_o those_o which_o be_v the_o daily_a auditor_n of_o this_o doctrine_n will_v now_o afresh_o examine_v themselves_o and_o take_v a_o account_n of_o their_o memory_n to_o see_v what_o be_v long_o ago_o forget_v which_o here_o again_o be_v new_o publish_v whereby_o we_o shall_v learn_v how_o easy_o good_a thing_n especial_o such_o thing_n as_o accompany_v salvation_n do_v slip_n from_o we_o and_o by_o the_o tentation_n of_o satan_n become_v fruitless_a beside_o the_o doctrine_n here_o deliver_v be_v after_o a_o sort_n a_o plant_n of_o your_o own_o set_n and_o fruit_n of_o your_o own_o labour_v so_o that_o it_o acknowledge_v itself_o due_a of_o right_n unto_o yourself_o fly_v unto_o you_o as_o to_o a_o sanctuary_n and_o city_n of_o refuge_n and_o seek_v harbour_n against_o the_o barking_n and_o bite_n of_o the_o malicious_a and_o envious_a of_o who_o the_o wise_a philosopher_n speak_v male_a de_fw-la te_fw-la loquuntur_fw-la bene_fw-la nesciunt_fw-la loqui_fw-la faciunt_fw-la non_fw-la quod_fw-la mereor_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la solent_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la enim_fw-la canibus_fw-la sicinnatum_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la 〈◊〉_d pro_fw-la feritate_fw-la 〈◊〉_d sed_fw-la pro_fw-la consuetudine_fw-la latrent_fw-la that_o be_v such_o speak_v their_o pleasure_n of_o thou_o as_o have_v not_o learned_a to_o speakwell_v they_o do_v not_o what_o i_o do_v deserve_v but_o what_o themselves_o be_v wont_a for_o this_o be_v the_o property_n of_o many_o cur_n they_o bawl_v and_o bark_v rather_o of_o custom_n then_o of_o any_o curstness_n second_o i_o offer_v it_o unto_o you_o to_o testify_v a_o thankful_a hart_n for_o your_o kindness_n and_o curtesey_n receive_v at_o your_o hand_n not_o only_o such_o as_o be_v in_o the_o open_a view_n of_o the_o world_n and_o as_o it_o be_v public_o record_v in_o the_o mind_n and_o memory_n of_o many_o man_n live_v but_o such_o as_o i_o have_v private_o enjoy_v and_o which_o without_o the_o most_o heinous_a and_o horrible_a kind_n of_o unthankfulnes_n i_o can_v forget_v or_o pretermit_v for_o albeit_o he_o that_o either_o deny_v or_o disemble_v or_o requite_v not_o a_o benefit_n be_v account_v worthy_o unthankful_a according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o *_o the_o same_o seneca_n multa_fw-la sunt_fw-la genera_fw-la ingratorum_fw-la ut_fw-la furum_fw-la homicidarum_fw-la quorum_fw-la una_fw-la culpa_fw-la est_fw-la coeterum_fw-la in_o partibus_fw-la variet_fw-la as_o 1_o magna_fw-la ingratus_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la benificium_fw-la accepisse_fw-la se_fw-la negat_fw-la quod_fw-la accepit_fw-la ingratus_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la dissimulat_fw-la ingratus_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la reddit_fw-la ingratissimus_fw-la omnium_fw-la qui_fw-la oblitus_fw-la est_fw-la ileave_v therefore_o this_o testimony_n to_o posterity_n of_o my_o remembrance_n of_o your_o manifold_a favour_n and_o can_v bury_v in_o forgetfulness_n either_o your_o desire_n to_o place_v i_o in_o the_o charge_n whereby_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n i_o yet_o abide_v or_o your_o worthy_a travel_n and_o labour_n to_o effect_v it_o before_o i_o do_v affect_v it_o or_o your_o approbation_n of_o i_o before_o other_o make_v the_o way_n easy_a to_o obtain_v my_o purpose_n &_o find_v i_o out_o when_o i_o seek_v not_o after_o any_o profit_n or_o promotion_n three_o i_o presume_v to_o dedicate_v these_o my_o simple_a labour_n to_o your_o worship_n in_o respect_n of_o other_o into_o who_o hand_n they_o may_v hereafr_o come_v for_o albeit_o this_o treatise_n be_v no_o great_a book_n for_o your_o woorships_n self_n who_o have_v your_o sense_n expert_a and_o exercise_v in_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n have_v not_o need_v to_o be_v teach_v the_o principle_n of_o religion_n yet_o shroud_a itself_o under_o your_o countenance_n and_o come_v forth_o under_o the_o sasegarde_n of_o your_o protection_n many_o which_o otherwise_o will_v never_o vouchsafe_v to_o look_v into_o it_o shall_v thereby_o be_v embolden_v and_o encourage_v to_o read_v the_o same_o whereby_o god_n may_v more_o and_o more_o be_v glorify_v his_o people_n instruct_v his_o truth_n and_o save_a health_n enlarge_v and_o spread_v abroad_o we_o see_v in_o these_o last_o and_o worst_a time_n of_o the_o world_n wherein_o iniquity_n abound_v and_o get_v the_o upper_a hand_n how_o this_o present_a age_n on_o the_o one_o side_n surfet_v with_o the_o trash_n and_o rubbish_n of_o foolish_a and_o filthy_a write_n such_o as_o blot_v not_o only_a paper_n but_o heaven_n and_o earth_n with_o their_o vanity_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n scorn_v and_o scoff_v at_o all_o treatise_n of_o religion_n and_o devotion_n the_o very_a heathen_a in_o all_o their_o consultation_n and_o deliberation_n *_o be_v not_o wont_n to_o prefer_v profit_n before_o 3_o pleasure_n but_o now_o such_o as_o mask_v under_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n delight_n rather_o to_o read_v legend_n of_o lie_n than_o book_n that_o may_v build_v we_o up_o in_o faith_n and_o love_n so_o that_o we_o may_v just_o renew_v the_o old_a complaint_n *_o of_o the_o poet_n persius_n o_o cur_n as_o hominam_fw-la o_o quantum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la inane_fw-la 1_o quis_fw-la leget_fw-la haec_fw-la min'tu_fw-ge istud_fw-la ais_fw-la nemo_fw-la hercule_fw-la nemo_fw-la well_fw-mi duo_fw-la velnemo_fw-la turpe_fw-la &_o miserabile_fw-la quare_fw-la ne_fw-fr mihi_fw-la polydamas_n et_fw-la troiades_fw-la labeonem_fw-la praetulerint_fw-la nugae_fw-la accept_v therefore_o i_o most_o humble_o beseech_v you_o this_o small_a testimony_n of_o my_o dutiful_a goodwill_n towards_o your_o worship_n rather_o consider_v the_o simple_a mind_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o giver_n then_o weigh_v the_o worth_n and_o value_n of_o the_o guifte_n especial_o see_v that_o i_o have_v give_v it_o in_o charge_n not_o to_o come_v unto_o you_o uncalled_a nor_o to_o interrupt_v your_o more_o necessary_a affair_n the_o god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n multiply_v the_o grace_n of_o his_o spirit_n upon_o you_o and_o all_o you_o add_v many_o good_a and_o happy_a day_n unto_o you_o and_o enritch_n your_o heart_n with_o true_a piety_n 8_o which_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o life_n present_a and_o that_o life_n which_o be_v to_o come_v thus_o commend_v and_o commit_v your_o wor_n to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o word_n of_o his_o grace_n which_o be_v able_a to_o build_v further_o and_o to_o give_v a_o inheritance_n immortal_a 32_o and_o incorruptible_a among_o all_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v i_o most_o humble_o take_v my_o leave_n of_o you_o from_o isfield_n the_o 12._o of_o june_n an._n 1606._o your_o worship_n in_o all_o christian_n duty_n to_o be_v command_v
10_o he_o seal_v up_o the_o promise_n &_o make_v it_o eff_a 〈◊〉_d christ_n jesus_n chap._n 1_o who_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o all_o sacrament_n the_o faithful_a receiver_n c._n twelve_o 〈◊〉_d christ_n apyli_v he_o to_o himself_o the_o use_v see_v this_o letterb._n the_o use_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v three_o to_o strengthen_v and_o confirm_v faith_n chap._n 13_o 〈◊〉_d god_n be_v true_a in_o his_o promise_n many_o of_o the_o faithful_a first_o believe_v before_o they_o do_v partake_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v a_o seal_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d chap._n 14_o these_o be_v the_o article_n of_o agreement_n between_o god_n who_o promise_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n adoption_n of_o son_n nes_z possession_n of_o heaven_n man_n 〈◊〉_d ho_o promise_v to_o believe_v the_o promise_n to_o love_v his_o brethren_n enemy_n to_o perform_v obedsence_n to_o be_v badge_n of_o our_o christian_n profession_n chap._n 15_o the_o number_n of_o they_o see_v the_o letter_n a_o they_o that_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v the_o two_o only_a sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n chap._n 16_o that_o 〈◊〉_d be_v no_o sacrament_n chap_n 17_o that_o popish_a penance_n be_v no_o sacrament_n chap._n 18_o that_o matrimony_n be_v no_o sacrament_n chap_n 19_o that_o order_n be_v no_o sacrament_n chap_n 20_o that_o extreme_a unction_n be_v no_o sacrament_n chap_n 21_o a_o table_n of_o the_o content_n of_o the_o second_o book_n baptism_n be_v the_o first_o sacrament_n wherein_o by_o outward_a wash_n of_o the_o body_n once_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o inward_a cleanse_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v represent_v chap._n 1_o in_o baptism_n consider_v the_o part_n be_v twofold_a chap._n 3_o outward_a part_n minister_n chap._n 3_o who_o duty_n it_o be_v to_o sanctify_v the_o water_n wash_v the_o party_n word_n of_o institution_n baptise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n chapt_n 4_o element_n of_o water_n chap_n 5_o receiver_n be_v all_o such_o as_o be_v in_o the_o covenant_n chap._n 6._o man_n and_o woman_n in_o year_n that_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n infant_n of_o they_o chap_n 7_o inward_a part_n god_n the_o father_n chap_n 8._o who_o offer_v the_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n give_v christ_n to_o the_o believer_n holy_a spirit_n chap_n 9_o who_o perform_v that_o which_o be_v promise_v in_o the_o word_n christ_n jesus_n chap_n 10_o ratifieng_v our_o regeneration_n remission_n of_o sin_n soul_n cleanse_v represent_v by_o the_o body_n wash_v cha_n 11_o the_o use_n of_o baptism_n be_v these_o 3_o to_o show_v our_o plant_n and_o engraft_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n cha_n 12_o to_z assure_v we_o of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n cha_n 13_o original_a actual_a to_o teach_v to_o die_v to_o sin_n and_o live_v to_o righteousness_n cha_n 14._o a_o table_n of_o the_o principal_a point_n contain_v in_o the_o last_o book_n the_o lord_n supper_n call_v by_o 〈◊〉_d name_n ch_z 1_o be_v the_o second_o sacrament_n wherein_o by_o visible_a receive_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v represent_v 〈◊〉_d spiritual_a communion_n 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d ch_n 2_o in_o this_o sacra_fw-la observe_v the_o work_n itself_o where_o in_o observe_v the_o part_n outward_a minist_n chap._n 3_o who_o duty_n be_v to_o take_v the_o bread_n and_o i_o into_o his_o hand_n to_o bless_v and_o 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n of_o institution_n to_o break_v the_o bread_n and_o pour_v out_o then_o ine_z to_o distribute_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o word_n of_o institution_n and_o promise_n contain_v therein_o chap._n 4_o the_o outward_a sign_n chap._n 5_o which_o be_v bread_n wine_n the_o communicants_a chap_n 6._o who_o action_n be_v to_o take_v the_o bread_n and_o cupinto_fw-la their_o hand_n to_o eat_v the_o bread_n &_o drink_v the_o wine_n inward_a god_n the_o father_n ch_n 8_o who_o offer_v christ_n to_o all_o comer_n give_v christ_n for_o the_o redemtion_n of_o the_o fat_a spirit_n who_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n promise_v ch_n 9_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n prepare_v to_o be_v the_o lively_a food_n of_o our_o soul_n ch_n x_o the_o faithful_a receiver_n chap._n 1_o 〈◊〉_d hose_n duty_n be_v to_o apprehend_v &_o receive_v christ_n &_o his_o benefit_n to_o appropriate_v and_o apply_v he_o to_o the_o soul_n the_o use_v see_v this_o letter_n c_o three_o to_o show_n forth_o with_o thanksgiving_n the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n chap_n 12_o to_o teach_v our_o communion_n and_o growth_n in_o christ_n chap._n 13_o to_o declare_v our_o communion_n and_o growth_n with_o our_o brethren_n chap._n 14_o preparation_n to_o the_o work_n see_v the_o letter_n d_o thing_n the_o necessity_n in_o respect_n of_o god_n presence_n with_o who_o we_o have_v to_o do_v and_o to_o deal_v our_o own_o profit_n be_v right_o prepare_v our_o own_o practice_n in_o prepare_v and_o take_v our_o ordinary_a meat_n the_o sacrament_n itself_o defile_v by_o unreverent_a receive_n the_o punishment_n procure_v by_o want_n of_o this_o care_n the_o part_n the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o ourselves_o especial_o of_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n chap_n 16_o faith_n in_o christ_n see_v every_o one_o receive_v so_o mnch_n as_o he_o believe_v he_o receive_v chap._n 17_o repentance_n from_o dead_a work_n daily_o renew_v for_o daily_a sin_n reconciliation_n to_o our_o brethren_n chap_n 19_o the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o general_a contain_v the_o true_a doctrine_n thereof_o overthrow_v the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o deliver_v the_o comfortable_a use_n ofthem_n to_o all_o the_o people_n of_o god._n chap._n i._o of_o the_o agreement_n and_o difference_n between_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n god_n even_o from_o the_o beginning_n add_v unto_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n church_n his_o sacrament_n in_o the_o church_n as_o the_o scripture_n teach_v outward_o represent_v &_o vifiblie_o offer_v to_o our_o sight_n those_o thing_n that_o inward_o he_o perform_v to_o we_o as_o 9_o the_o tree_n oflife_o and_o the_o tree_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n in_o the_o garden_n after_o man_n fall_n when_o a_o new_a necessity_n be_v add_v in_o regard_n of_o man_n want_n and_o weakness_n he_o testify_v his_o love_n and_o ratify_v his_o covenant_n by_o sacrifice_n and_o ceremony_n to_o our_o first_o parent_n he_o give_v the_o 14._o ark_n to_o noah_n and_o his_o son_n to_o confirm_v they_o in_o the_o promise_n which_o he_o make_v to_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v drown_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n he_o add_v to_o abraham_n 11._o the_o sign_n of_o circumcision_n as_o a_o seal_n 11_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o faith_n and_o to_o the_o israelite_n he_o give_v the_o passeover_n manna_n oblation_n purification_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n the_o rock_n and_o such_o like_a spiritual_a tip_n whereby_o he_o assure_v they_o of_o the_o promise_n that_o god_n for_o the_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n wrought_v upon_o the_o cross_n will_v give_v to_o all_o that_o believe_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o everlasting_a life_n now_o the_o world_n of_o god_n may_v fit_o be_v resemble_v to_o writing_n and_o evidence_n and_o the_o sacrament_n sacrament_n to_o seal_n which_o the_o lord_n alone_o set_v to_o his_o own_o letter_n they_o be_v as_o a_o visible_a sermon_n preach_v unto_o we_o most_o lively_a the_o promise_n of_o god_n that_o as_o the_o word_n we_o hear_v do_v edify_v and_o instruct_v the_o mind_n by_o the_o outward_a ear_n so_o do_v the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o eye_n &_o other_o sense_n first_o then_o that_o we_o may_v understand_v the_o doctrine_n and_o nature_n os_fw-la the_o sacrament_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v what_o the_o word_n &_o sacrament_n have_v in_o common_a and_o how_o they_o agree_v one_o with_o another_o then_o what_o they_o have_v peculiar_a and_o proper_a each_o to_o other_o and_o how_o they_o differ_v one_o from_o a_o other_o the_o agreement_n between_o they_o stand_v in_o these_o point_n first_o both_o be_v ofgod_o and_o instrument_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n use_v to_o this_o end_n to_o make_v we_o more_o and_o more_o one_o with_o christ_n and_o partaker_n of_o salvation_n 〈◊〉_d that_o god_n need_v they_o or_o that_o he_o be_v tie_v unto_o they_o for_o as_o he_o can_v nourish_v without_o meat_n and_o drink_v so_o he_o can_v save_v without_o word_n or_o sacrament_n but_o because_o we_o need_v they_o he_o use_v they_o when_o he_o will_v and_o as_o often_o as_o it_o please_v he_o the_o same_o which_o be_v publish_v and_o promise_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v signify_v and_o seal_v by_o the_o sacrament_n for_o they_o be_v not_o a_o deliver_v of_o new_a promise_n and_o
scripture_n and_o nothing_o by_o they_o be_v add_v to_o the_o scripture_n now_o as_o the_o father_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n call_v these_o holy_a rite_n by_o name_n of_o mystery_n because_o the_o substance_n of_o they_o be_v only_o know_v to_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o hide_a from_o other_o so_o the_o ancient_a teacher_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n call_v they_o sacrament_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o affinity_n and_o nearness_n between_o they_o and_o a_o sacrament_n for_o a_o sacrament_n proper_o be_v that_o solemn_a oath_n in_o war_n by_o which_o soldier_n bind_v themselves_o to_o their_o chief_a captain_n such_o a_o regard_n have_v the_o old_a roman_n in_o the_o discipline_n of_o their_o war_n that_o it_o be_v 1._o not_o lawful_a for_o any_o to_o kill_v a_o enemy_n or_o enter_v into_o the_o battle_n to_o fight_v unless_o he_o be_v swear_v a_o soldier_n so_o when_o we_o be_v partaker_n of_o these_o holy_a sign_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v in_o his_o church_n by_o which_o he_o bestow_v upon_o we_o spiritual_a gift_n god_n we_o do_v bind_v ourselves_o to_o he_o we_o profess_v open_o his_o true_a religion_n we_o vow_v to_o fight_v under_o his_o banner_n against_o our_o enemy_n so_o that_o they_o be_v testimony_n and_o token_n of_o the_o covenant_n between_o god_n and_o we_o that_o he_o be_v our_o god_n and_o we_o bind_v ourselves_o to_o be_v his_o people_n to_o serve_v he_o and_o no_o other_o god_n so_o circumcision_n be_v a_o seal_n of_o god_n promise_n to_o abraham_n and_o a_o seal_n of_o abraham_n faith_n and_o obedience_n towards_o god_n by_o they_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o god_n and_o god_n vouchsafe_v to_o bind_v himself_o too_o man_n wherefore_o the_o word_n sacrament_n be_v translate_v from_o the_o camp_n to_o the_o church_n from_o the_o soldier_n to_o a_o christian_n from_o a_o civil_a use_n to_o a_o holy_a let_v we_o see_v in_o this_o sense_n and_o signification_n what_o it_o be_v now_o the_o word_n be_v borrow_v from_o war_n be_v way_n take_v two_o way_n first_o in_o a_o general_a signification_n and_o may_v comprehend_v all_o manner_n of_o sign_n whether_o natural_a or_o miraculous_a or_o voluntary_a which_o god_n command_v man_n to_o use_v to_o assure_v they_o of_o the_o undoubted_a truth_n of_o his_o promise_n as_o when_o he_o give_v to_o adam_n in_o the_o garden_n the_o tree_n of_o life_n to_o be_v a_o pledge_n of_o his_o immortality_n the_o rainbow_n to_o noah_n and_o his_o posterity_n sometime_o he_o give_v they_o miraculous_a sign_n as_o light_v in_o a_o smoke_a furnace_n to_o abraham_n the_o fleece_n wet_a the_o earth_n be_v dry_a and_o the_o earth_n wet_a the_o fleece_n be_v dry_a to_o gideon_n to_o promise_n and_o perform_v victory_n to_o gedeon_n in_o this_o large_a acception_n of_o the_o word_n we_o do_v not_o entreat_v of_o the_o sacrament_n we_o speak_v proper_o of_o those_o which_o god_n have_v leave_v to_o be_v ordinary_a in_o his_o church_n to_o be_v seal_n of_o our_o communion_n with_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o righteousness_n which_o be_v by_o faith_n a_o sacrament_n be_v thus_o consider_v be_v a_o visible_a sign_n and_o seal_v ordain_v of_o god_n whereby_o christ_n and_o all_o his_o save_a grace_n by_o certain_a outward_a rite_n be_v signify_v exhibit_v and_o seal_v up_o unto_o us._n in_o this_o description_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v these_o 3._o thing_n first_o the_o whole_a kind_n or_o general_a second_o the_o cause_n or_o author_n thereof_o and_o last_o the_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n deliver_v touch_v the_o first_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v that_o a_o sacrament_n be_v a_o visible_a sign_n and_o seal_n this_o be_v prove_v and_o confirm_v in_o sundry_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o gen._n 17._o speak_v of_o circumcision_n he_o say_v 11_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d between_o i_o and_o thou_o and_o rom._n 4._o speak_v of_o abraham_n he_o say_v 11._o he_o receive_v the_o sign_n of_o circumcision_n as_o a_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n indeed_o a_o sign_n and_o a_o seal_n differ_v one_o from_o another_o as_o the_o general_a from_o the_o especial_a for_o every_o seal_n be_v a_o sign_n but_o every_o sign_n be_v not_o a_o seal_n a_o seal_n certify_v assure_v and_o confirm_v a_o thing_n a_o sign_n only_o show_v it_o but_o a_o sacrament_n do_v both_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n to_o signify_v and_o represent_v a_o seal_n to_o ratify_v and_o assure_v a_o instrument_n to_o confer_v and_o convey_v christ_n with_o all_o his_o benefit_n to_o they_o that_o true_o believe_v in_o he_o a_o pledge_n unto_o we_o of_o god_n promise_n a_o visible_a word_n and_o as_o a_o notable_a glass_n wherein_o we_o may_v behold_v 1._o assure_v testimony_n of_o god_n eternal_a favour_n &_o of_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n which_o he_o bestow_v upon_o us._n this_o teach_v we_o to_o acknowledge_v there_o be_v more_o inthe_n sacrament_n than_o be_v see_v with_o the_o eye_n or_o feel_v with_o the_o hand_n &_o therefore_o we_o must_v not_o conceive_v unreveret_o of_o they_o nor_o come_v negligenly_a unto_o they_o make_v they_o mere_a carnal_a and_o outward_a thing_n but_o we_o must_v think_v reverent_o speak_v sober_o receive_v humble_o and_o penitent_o these_o holy_a mystery_n again_o hereby_o we_o be_v bring_v to_o believe_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n for_o if_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o only_a sign_n of_o his_o favour_n but_o seal_n of_o our_o faith_n can_v we_o doubt_v of_o his_o mercy_n and_o good_a meaning_n towards_o we_o have_v leave_v such_o pawn_n and_o pledge_n thereof_o with_o we_o that_o we_o may_v have_v assure_v comfort_n and_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o salvation_n and_o eternal_a life_n be_v it_o not_o among_o man_n matter_n of_o assurance_n and_o a_o note_n of_o true_a deal_n to_o have_v a_o pledge_n leave_v with_o we_o but_o behold_v god_n have_v leave_v unto_o we_o two_o pawn_n of_o his_o promise_n as_o it_o be_v a_o earnest-penny_n that_o our_o faith_n shall_v not_o waver_v if_o then_o his_o alone_a word_n be_v all_o suffycient_a have_v a_o noble_a addition_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o of_o his_o seal_n let_v we_o believe_v his_o promise_n and_o in_o all_o tentation_n rest_v upon_o they_o with_o all_o confidence_n and_o consolation_n second_o it_o be_v say_v alone_o a_o sacrament_n be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n not_o any_o angel_n or_o archangel_n not_o any_o prince_n or_o prelate_n but_o only_o god_n himself_o be_v the_o author_n and_o ordainer_n of_o the_o sacrament_n this_o appear_v by_o many_o witness_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 15._o i_o have_v set_v my_o bow_n in_o the_o cloud_n and_o be_v shall_v be_v for_o a_o sign_n of_o the_o covenant_n between_o i_o and_o the_o earth_n and_o when_o i_o shall_v cover_v the_o earth_n with_o a_o cloud_n and_o the_o bow_n shall_v be_v see_v in_o the_o cloud_n then_o will_v i_o remember_v my_o covenant_n which_o be_v between_o i_o and_o you_o where_o we_o see_v that_o when_o god_n determine_v to_o be_v merciful_a unto_o the_o world_n and_o never_o to_o drown_v the_o same_o with_o water_n again_o as_o he_o have_v drown_v it_o he_o give_v they_o a_o sign_n of_o his_o promise_n to_o wit_n his_o bow_n in_o the_o cloud_n when_o god_n will_v witness_v and_o establish_v to_o abraham_n and_o his_o seed_n after_o he_o the_o promise_n of_o his_o mercy_n he_o ordain_v a_o sacrament_n to_o confirm_v the_o same_o gen._n 17._o this_o be_v my_o covenant_n which_o you_o shall_v keep_v between_o i_o and_o you_o 10._o let_v every_o man_n child_n among_o you_o be_v circumcise_v and_o the_o apostle_n say_v i_o have_v receive_v 23_o of_o the_o lord_n that_o which_o i_o have_v deliver_v unto_o you_o and_o christ_n himself_o institute_v 19_o baptism_n &_o send_v forth_o his_o disciple_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n all_o these_o testimony_n as_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n do_v confirm_v we_o in_o this_o truth_n that_o none_o have_v power_n &_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n to_o institute_v a_o sacrament_n but_o god_n only_o and_o the_o reason_n be_v apparent_a first_o the_o sacrament_n belong_v to_o the_o service_n &_o worship_n of_o god_n now_o it_o rest_v not_o in_o man_n to_o appoint_v &_o prescribe_v a_o service_n of_o god_n but_o to_o retain_v and_o embrace_v that_o which_o be_v teach_v by_o he_o for_o 9_o in_o vain_a they_o worship_v he_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n man_n precept_n again_o the_o sacramental_a sign_n have_v god_n promise_n annex_v unto_o they_o confirm_v we_o in_o the_o same_o which_o they_o can_v not_o do_v but_o by_o the_o blessing_n and_o benefit_n of_o he_o that_o promise_v so_o that_o god_n only_o be_v able_a to_o bestow_v grace_n and_o he_o alone_o can_v appoint_v true_a sign_n of_o grace_n for_o as_o he_o only_o
have_v authority_n to_o seal_v the_o charter_n &_o pardon_n in_o who_o jurisdiction_n it_o be_v to_o grant_v it_o so_o likewise_o god_n give_v the_o pledge_n and_o token_n of_o his_o grace_n which_o shed_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n into_o our_o heart_n wherefore_o the_o reverend_a sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n none_o can_v institute_v by_o his_o authority_n but_o only_o god_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o sign_n have_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v none_o but_o christ_n himself_o can_v say_v of_o the_o bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n none_o but_o he_o can_v say_v of_o the_o cup_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n none_o but_o he_o breathe_v on_o his_o apostle_n can_v say_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n none_o but_o he_o can_v make_v the_o water_n in_o baptism_n to_o be_v the_o laver_n of_o regeneration_n let_v we_o see_v what_o good_a and_o profitable_a use_n arise_v from_o this_o doctrine_n first_o if_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o 1._o god_n than_o they_o depend_v not_o one_o the_o worthiness_n or_o unworthynesse_n fitness_n or_o unfitnesse_n vice_n or_o virtue_n of_o the_o minister_n but_o all_o the_o efficacy_n and_o force_n hang_v on_o the_o holy_a institution_n of_o christ_n jesus_n the_o minister_n impiety_n &_o wickedness_n make_v not_o a_o nullity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n neither_o hinder_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n no_o more_o than_o the_o piety_n and_o godliness_n of_o a_o faithful_a minister_n can_v profit_v a_o unworthy_a receiver_n indeed_o the_o church_n must_v endeavour_v that_o the_o minister_n thereof_o may_v be_v holy_a and_o unblameable_a according_a to_o the_o apostle_n 3._o rule_v but_o we_o must_v not_o measure_n the_o profit_n of_o the_o receiver_n by_o the_o person_n of_o the_o minister_n if_o a_o thief_n do_v steal_v a_o sack_n of_o corn_n we_o see_v if_o he_o sow_v it_o it_o grow_v up_o and_o bring_v forth_o increase_v because_o the_o fault_n rest_v not_o in_o the_o seed_n which_o be_v good_a but_o in_o the_o sour_a which_o be_v evil_a so_o do_v the_o sacrament_n profit_v the_o faithful_a howsoever_o he_o be_v unfaithful_a that_o do_v administer_v it_o we_o see_v if_o the_o seede-man_n have_v foul_a filthy_a and_o unclean_a hand_n that_o sow_v yet_o if_o the_o seed_n be_v clean_o sweet_a and_o fair_a it_o prosper_v so_o the_o holy_a thing_n of_o god_n god_n can_v be_v defile_v by_o the_o corrupt_a and_o sinful_a life_n of_o the_o minister_n who_o deliver_v nothing_o of_o his_o own_o but_o dispense_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o whether_o the_o minister_n be_v good_a or_o evil_n godly_a or_o without_o godliness_n a_o heretic_n or_o a_o catholic_a a_o idolater_n or_o a_o true_a worshipper_n of_o god_n the_o effect_n be_v all_o one_o the_o worthiness_n of_o the_o sacrament_n depend_v not_o on_o man_n but_o proceed_v from_o god_n and_o therefore_o all_o such_o as_o contemn_v the_o sacrament_n of_o god_n for_o the_o sacraledge_n of_o man_n shall_v bear_v their_o condemnation_n whosoever_o they_o be_v the_o two_o son_n of_o eli_n hophni_n and_o phinehas_n be_v 23._o exceed_v sinner_n against_o the_o lord_n yet_o because_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n abhort_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o god_n and_o tread_v his_o worship_n under_o their_o foot_n the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v kindle_v against_o 11_o the_o whole_a land_n and_o he_o denounce_v such_o judgement_n to_o come_v upon_o they_o as_o whosoever_o shall_v hear_v thereof_o both_o his_o ear_n shall_v tingle_v so_o then_o the_o offence_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v no_o defence_n of_o the_o people_n but_o as_o the_o priest_n give_v the_o offence_n and_o the_o people_n take_v it_o so_o god_n bind_v they_o together_o in_o the_o same_o judgement_n so_o we_o must_v know_v god_n will_v not_o bear_v the_o contempt_n of_o his_o ordinance_n under_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o of_o the_o minister_n wickedness_n and_o unworthynesse_n if_o his_o hand_n be_v corrupt_a let_v thy_o heart_n be_v uncorrupt_a though_o his_o sin_n be_v his_o own_o yet_o the_o sacrament_n be_v god_n he_o may_v minister_v comfort_n to_o thou_o though_o he_o bring_v none_o to_o himself_o as_o the_o workman_n that_o build_v the_o ark_n prepare_v a_o mean_n to_o save_v other_o but_o be_v drown_v themselves_o or_o as_o the_o bell_n though_o they_o move_v not_o themselves_o yet_o serve_v to_o bring_v other_o to_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n or_o as_o the_o scribe_n that_o point_v the_o way_n to_o the_o wiseman_n but_o themselves_o vonchsafe_v not_o to_o step_v out_o of_o door_n to_o inquire_v after_o christ._n the_o ear_n of_o corn_n do_v carry_v the_o corn_n with_o the_o chaff_n to_o be_v purge_v and_o cleanse_v in_o the_o barn_n &_o though_o the_o chaff_n be_v unprofitable_a yet_o it_o profit_v the_o corn_n as_o the_o lantern_n hold_v the_o candle_n to_o give_v light_n unto_o other_o that_o be_v the_o passenger_n this_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n math._n 23._o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n sit_v in_o moses_n seat_n 18_o all_o therefore_o whatsoever_o they_o bid_v you_o observe_v that_o observe_v and_o do_v but_o after_o their_o work_n do_v not_o for_o they_o say_v and_o do_v not_o albeit_o then_o the_o scripture_n condemn_v such_o as_o give_v offence_n yet_o such_o as_o take_v offence_n be_v not_o thereby_o justify_v let_v we_o magnify_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o then_o we_o may_v expect_v a_o blessing_n at_o his_o hand_n this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o 7_o apostle_n teach_v 1_o cor._n 3._o i_o have_v plant_v apollo_n water_v but_o god_n give_v the_o increase_n so_o then_o neither_o be_v he_o that_o plant_v any_o thing_n neither_o he_o that_o water_v but_o god_n that_o give_v the_o increase_n second_o be_v god_n the_o true_a and_o only_a author_n and_o appointer_n of_o sacrament_n then_o none_o must_v add_v unto_o or_o 2._o take_v from_o the_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o he_o in_o the_o church_n no_o more_o then_o unto_o the_o 2._o word_n itself_o deut_n 4._o you_o shall_v put_v nothing_o to_o the_o word_n which_o i_o command_v you_o neither_o shall_v you_o take_v aught_o there_o from_o that_o you_o may_v keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n which_o i_o command_v you_o and_o revel_v 22._o 18._o 19_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v 19_o add_v unto_o these_o thing_n god_n shall_v add_v unto_o he_o the_o plague_n that_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n and_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v diminish_v of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o book_n of_o this_o pprophecy_n god_n shall_v take_v away_o his_o part_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n if_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o invention_n of_o man_n they_o may_v also_o fit_o receive_v the_o addition_n and_o subtraction_n of_o man_n but_o see_v they_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n we_o must_v be_v content_a to_o have_v they_o order_v by_o god_n all_o ceremony_n therefore_o and_o rite_n 〈◊〉_d by_o man_n as_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n be_v so_o many_o abomination_n and_o innovation_n of_o his_o service_n as_o god_n only_o can_v gracious_o promise_v so_o he_o can_v only_o effectual_o perform_v what_o he_o have_v promise_v wherefore_o we_o must_v condemn_v those_o as_o guilty_a of_o rebellion_n against_o god_n that_o bold_o break_v out_o either_o to_o devise_v new_a sacrament_n or_o to_o add_v and_o detract_v from_o they_o that_o god_n have_v ordain_v we_o be_v command_v to_o rest_n in_o those_o that_o he_o have_v appoint_v to_o the_o church_n in_o his_o word_n for_o as_o well_o we_o may_v devise_v a_o new_a word_n as_o deliver_v a_o new_a sacrament_n three_o we_o learn_v hereby_o that_o they_o which_o condemn_v the_o sacrament_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v of_o 3._o any_o force_n with_o themselves_o and_o make_v small_a account_n of_o they_o do_v esteem_v they_o as_o 〈◊〉_d or_o otherwise_o abuse_v they_o contrary_a to_o the_o institution_n will_n and_o commandment_n of_o christ_n all_o these_o do_v grievous_o sin_n not_o against_o man_n but_o against_o the_o author_n of_o they_o that_o be_v god_n who_o have_v ordain_v they_o and_o great_o endanger_v their_o own_o salvation_n 29_o as_o 1._o cor_fw-la 11._o he_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v unworthilye_o eat_v and_o drink_v his_o own_o judgement_n because_v he_o discern_v not_o the_o lord_n body_n if_o a_o man_n contemn_v or_o any_o way_n contumelious_o abuse_v the_o seal_n of_o a_o prince_n he_o be_v punish_v and_o therefore_o such_o as_o scorn_v and_o make_v a_o mock_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o god_n can_v go_v scotfree_a but_o shall_v be_v indite_v of_o high_a treason_n against_o his_o majesty_n the_o last_o point_n to_o be_v consideder_v in_o the_o discrption_n of_o a_o sacrament_n
gospel_n exclude_v no_o man_n 28_o unless_o we_o exclude_v ourselves_o infidelity_n doubtfulness_n and_o despair_n be_v very_o grievous_a sin_n and_o strike_v at_o the_o very_a hart_n of_o god_n we_o must_v under_o hope_n believe_v above_o hope_n with_o faithful_a abraham_n the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n obedience_n be_v infinite_a 10_o high_a than_o the_o heaven_n deep_o than_o the_o earth_n broad_a than_o the_o sea_n strong_a than_o the_o law_n mighty_a than_o the_o devil_n and_o great_a than_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n beside_o god_n do_v measure_v the_o obedience_n due_a to_o he_o 20_o rather_o by_o the_o affection_n then_o by_o the_o action_n rather_o by_o the_o desire_n to_o obey_v then_o by_o the_o outward_a performance_n of_o it_o moreover_o when_o one_o sin_n be_v forgive_v all_o the_o rest_n be_v likewise_o forgive_v even_o as_o 〈◊〉_d of_o one_o sin_n bring_v with_o it_o repentance_n of_o all_o know_a sin_n 29_o for_o the_o gift_n and_o call_n of_o god_n be_v without_o repontance_n last_o of_o all_o we_o admonish_v they_o to_o consider_v that_o grace_n and_o faith_n howsoever_o they_o may_v be_v smother_v be_v never_o whole_o take_v away_o by_o sin_n of_o infirmity_n 20_o but_o thereby_o be_v manifest_v and_o magnify_v touch_v their_o family_n we_o say_v unto_o they_o call_v they_o before_o you_o exhort_v they_o to_o cleave_v family_n unto_o god_n with_o full_a purpose_n of_o heart_n to_o love_v he_o to_o walk_v before_o he_o in_o fear_n and_o reverence_n and_o to_o serve_v he_o in_o righteousness_n all_o the_o day_n of_o their_o life_n gyve_v they_o charge_n to_o learn_v believe_v and_o obey_v the_o true_a religion_n and_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n set_v down_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n god_n commend_v abraham_n for_o this_o say_v 19_o i_o know_v he_o that_o he_o will_v command_v his_o son_n and_o household_n after_o he_o that_o they_o keep_v the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o do_v righteousness_n and_o judgement_n that_o the_o lord_n may_v bring_v upon_o abraham_n that_o he_o have_v speak_v unto_o he_o david_n give_v solomon_n his_o son_n a_o notable_a and_o right_a noble_a charge_n before_o he_o die_v 9_o speak_v thus_o to_o he_o stand_v before_o he_o and_o before_o the_o prince_n and_o peer_n of_o the_o kingdom_n thou_o solomon_n my_o son_n know_v thou_o the_o god_n of_o thy_o father_n and_o serve_v he_o with_o a_o willing_a mind_n for_o the_o lord_n search_v all_o heart_n and_o 〈◊〉_d all_o the_o imagination_n of_o bought_n if_o thou_o seek_v he_o he_o will_v be_v find_v of_o thou_o but_o if_o thou_o for_o 〈◊〉_d he_o he_o will_v cast_v thou_o off_o for_o ever_o i_o each_o they_o that_o childhood_n and_o youth_n be_v vanity_n 13_o teach_v they_o to_o remember_v 〈◊〉_d creator_n in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o youth_n teach_v they_o to_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o to_o practile_a in_o their_o life_n and_o conversation_n what_o they_o have_v read_v and_o learn_v instruct_v they_o to_o avoid_v idleness_n to_o eschew_v evil_a company_n to_o give_v themselves_o to_o prayer_n and_o hear_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n warn_v thy_o child_n to_o love_n god_n to_o reverence_v their_o mother_n and_o to_o love_v one_o another_o warn_v they_o to_o speak_v evil_a of_o no_o man_n and_o beware_v of_o take_v god_n name_n in_o vain_a put_v they_o in_o mind_n that_o god_n be_v their_o father_n their_o creator_n their_o preserver_n their_o redeemer_n their_o sanctiher_n yea_o their_o judge_n that_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o reward_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n we_o must_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n 〈◊〉_d of_o christ_n that_o every_o one_o may_v receive_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v in_o his_o body_n whether_o good_a or_o evil_n put_v they_o in_o remembrance_n not_o to_o oppress_v or_o defraud_v any_o man_n 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o avenger_n of_o all_o such_o thing_n who_o will_v not_o bless_v evil-gotten_a good_n but_o send_v his_o curse_n upon_o they_o and_o they_o shall_v not_o prosper_v admonish_v they_o to_o show_v forth_o their_o faith_n by_o good_a work_n and_o to_o show_v mercy_n accord_v to_o their_o power_n last_o to_o honour_v their_o prince_n parent_n master_n and_o all_o superior_n thus_o we_o instruct_v man_n to_o live_v and_o to_o die_v that_o die_v they_o may_v live_v with_o god_n in_o his_o kingdom_n thus_o we_o anoint_v the_o sick_a with_o precious_a balm_n that_o 〈◊〉_d shall_v not_o break_v their_o head_n and_o with_o the_o inward_a and_o invisible_a oil_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o mercy_n thus_o we_o warn_v they_o to_o prepare_v the_o oil_n of_o faith_n in_o their_o lamp_n and_o to_o keep_v a_o good_a conscience_n towards_o god_n and_o man_n that_o they_o may_v with_o joy_n and_o comfort_n depart_v in_o peace_n render_v up_o their_o soul_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n cheerful_o meet_v the_o bridegroom_n and_o enter_v with_o he_o into_o his_o kingdom_n so_o then_o the_o people_n lose_v nothing_o by_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o material_a oil_n the_o want_n thereof_o be_v supply_v with_o exhortation_n admonition_n reproof_n consolation_n prayer_n and_o supplication_n more_o desire_v of_o the_o sick_a and_o more_o available_a for_o the_o sick_a and_o thus_o much_o of_o extreme_a unction_n and_o the_o other_o forge_a sacrament_n whereof_o some_o want_v the_o outward_a sign_n some_o the_o spiritual_a grace_n signify_v some_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n some_o the_o promise_n annex_v and_o all_o of_o they_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o can_v admit_v they_o for_o any_o sacrament_n and_o so_o we_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v only_o two_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v baptism_n and_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o book_n the_o second_o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptilme_n be_v a_o honourable_a badge_n of_o our_o dedication_n to_o christ_n contain_v the_o true_a doctrine_n thereof_o overthrow_v the_o errot_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o deliver_v the_o comfortable_a use_n of_o this_o sacrament_n to_o all_o the_o people_n of_o god._n chap._n 1._o of_o the_o word_n baptism_n and_o what_o it_o be_v hitherto_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o general_n together_o with_o the_o part_n use_n and_o number_n of_o they_o now_o we_o come_v to_o the_o first_o sacrament_n which_o be_v baptism_n be_v a_o honourable_a badge_n whereby_o we_o be_v dedicate_v unto_o jesus_n christ_n way_n this_o word_n in_o scripture_n have_v many_o signification_n first_o in_o the_o native_a and_o proper_a signification_n it_o signify_v to_o dip_v to_o dive_v and_o plunge_v under_o water_n as_o mat._n 3_o 16._o john_n 3_o 22_o 23_o act_n 8._o 38_o 39_o second_o to_o cleanse_v and_o wash_v any_o thing_n with_o water_n even_o when_o this_o sacrament_n be_v not_o administer_v as_o mark._n 7_o where_o it_o be_v say_v the_o pharisy_n do_v not_o eat_v except_o first_o they_o wash_v so_o heb._n 9_o x_o the_o old_a tabernacle_n do_v consist_v in_o wash_n three_o it_o signifi_n the_o the_o cross_n affliction_n misery_n persecution_n and_o inward_a vexation_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o luk_n 12_o 50._o where_o christ_n say_v i_o must_v be_v baptize_v and_o how_o be_o i_o grieve_v 〈◊〉_d i_o be_v baptize_v and_o 〈◊〉_d 12._o 22._o be_v you_o able_a to_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n that_o i_o must_v drink_v of_o and_o be_v baptize_v with_o the_o baptism_n that_o i_o shall_v be_v baptize_v withal_o four_o it_o be_v take_v for_o a_o liberal_a and_o plentiful_a distribution_n of_o the_o grace_n and_o gift_n of_o god_n as_o act._n 1_o 5._o john_n baptize_v with_o water_n but_o you_o shall_v be_v baptize_v with_o the_o holyghost_n within_o these_o few_o date_n that_o be_v you_o shall_v receive_v a_o great_a measure_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n than_o you_o have_v do_v before_o five_o the_o word_n be_v take_v for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o john_n which_o he_o deliver_v before_o he_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n as_o act._n 18._o 25._o where_o apollos_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o eloquent_a man_n and_o mighty_a in_o the_o scripture_n know_v nothing_o but_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n last_o it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o whole_a work_n and_o action_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n as_o math_n 28_o 19_o go_v unto_o all_o nation_n teach_v and_o baptize_v they_o and_o in_o this_o last_o sense_n we_o be_v now_o to_o speak_v of_o it_o let_v we_o therefore_o see_v be_v what_o this_o sacrament_n be_v baptism_n be_v the_o first_o sacrament_n whereby_o by_o the_o outward_a 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o body_n with_o water_n once_o into_o the_o name_n of_o
covenant_n itself_o but_o a_o sign_n and_o token_n of_o the_o covenant_n as_o also_o it_o be_v afterward_o expound_v it_o shall_v be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o covenant_n between_o i_o and_o you_o the_o adversary_n can_v deny_v a_o figure_n in_o this_o speech_n now_o what_o difference_n be_v there_o between_o these_o two_o speech_n this_o be_v my_o covenant_n and_o this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v they_o not_o alike_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n to_o be_v understand_v so_o exodus_fw-la 12._o 11_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n 14_o passover_o proper_o the_o lamb_n be_v not_o the_o passover_o but_o serve_v to_o put_v they_o in_o remembrance_n of_o that_o benefit_n and_o it_o be_v expound_v aster_n the_o blood_n shall_v be_v a_o token_n for_o you_o upon_o the_o house_n where_o you_o be_v this_o day_n shall_v be_v unto_o vou_fw-fr a_o remembrance_n likewise_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o cor._n 10._o that_o rock_n be_v 4_o christ_n whereas_o proper_o the_o rock_n be_v not_o christ_n but_o the_o water_n flow_v from_o it_o do_v represent_v he_o thus_o than_o we_o must_v understand_v the_o word_n plain_o true_o and_o brief_o institution_n as_o if_o christ_n have_v say_v in_o this_o manner_n this_o bread_n which_o you_o have_v see_v i_o take_v break_v deliver_v and_o distribute_v and_o which_o i_o bid_v you_o take_v and_o cate_z be_v a_o sign_n or_o sacrament_n of_o my_o true_a body_n signify_v and_o seal_v up_o unto_o you_o that_o my_o body_n shall_v be_v break_v crush_v and_o crucify_v for_o you_o to_o purchase_v to_o you_o eternal_a life_n let_v these_o sacramental_a rite_n and_o action_n now_o perform_v by_o i_o and_o you_o be_v hereafter_o put_v in_o practice_n by_o you_o and_o all_o faithful_a minister_n and_o professor_n for_o the_o strengthen_n of_o your_o faith_n by_o the_o remembrance_n of_o my_o death_n and_o by_o the_o apply_v of_o the_o benefit_n thereof_o every_o one_o to_o your_o own_o self_n likewise_o have_v finish_v his_o supper_n when_o he_o do_v eat_v the_o passover_o with_o his_o disciple_n have_v take_v the_o cup_n and_o give_v thanks_o he_o give_v it_o be_v fily_v with_o wine_n to_o his_o disciple_n and_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o wine_n in_o this_o cup_n be_v a_o sign_n and_o sacrament_n of_o my_o blood_n by_o the_o shed_n whereof_o together_o with_o my_o death_n follow_v the_o full_a forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o perfect_a salvation_n which_o i_o by_o my_o unchangeable_a will_n &_o decree_n do_v give_v unto_o you_o and_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o be_v assure_v to_o you_o and_o all_o believer_n thus_o have_v open_v and_o clear_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n we_o shall_v hereafter_o need_v to_o spend_v the_o less_o time_n in_o confute_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n darkness_n shall_v fly_v before_o the_o light_n error_n before_o truth_n &_o cloudy_a mist_n before_o the_o sunshine_n of_o the_o day_n again_o see_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n be_v variable_o and_o 2_o diverse_o set_v down_o by_o the_o evangelist_n and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n we_o learn_v that_o every_o change_n of_o the_o word_n where_o the_o sense_n be_v nothing_o alter_v or_o diminish_v be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v as_o 〈◊〉_d or_o unlawful_a so_o that_o the_o alteration_n be_v in_o the_o form_n and_o frame_v of_o word_n not_o in_o the_o substance_n and_o sense_n of_o the_o matter_n the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o destroy_v for_o if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o heinous_a sin_n to_o have_v make_v any_o change_n or_o alteration_n or_o to_o have_v miss_v of_o the_o term_n or_o syllable_n of_o the_o institution_n no_o doubt_n the_o evangelist_n will_v have_v consent_v in_o the_o word_n and_o not_o have_v swerve_v one_o from_o another_o as_o we_o see_v they_o have_v do_v we_o see_v how_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o allegation_n of_o sundry_a place_n of_o scripture_n borrow_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v not_o evermore_o strict_o bind_v themselves_o to_o the_o 6_o very_a word_n as_o matthew_n 26._o hebrew_n 10._o 5._o and_o in_o sundry_a other_o but_o only_o to_o the_o sense_n and_o therefore_o 10_o sometime_o they_o add_v as_o matthew_n 4_o 10._o sometime_o they_o leave_v out_o as_o occasion_n serve_v true_a it_o be_v to_o alter_v any_o substantial_a part_n or_o to_o wrest_v the_o word_n to_o a_o wrong_n and_o contrary_a meaning_n or_o not_o at_o all_o to_o express_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n make_v the_o sacrament_n void_a but_o a_o alteration_n only_o of_o certain_a circumstance_n void_a as_o of_o number_n or_o person_n of_o letter_n or_o syllable_n can_v make_v frustrate_a the_o whole_a sacrament_n albeit_o we_o allow_v not_o any_o private_a and_o particular_a man_n to_o make_v any_o change_n of_o his_o own_o head_n in_o such_o circumstance_n or_o to_o bring_v in_o a_o new_a frame_n of_o word_n so_o in_o baptism_n the_o greek_a church_n say_v let_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n be_v baptize_v in_o this_o water_n &_o c._n and_o hereby_o nothing_o be_v detract_v from_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o sacrament_n because_o christ_n jesus_n have_v not_o precise_o appoint_v how_o many_o word_n the_o apostle_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v use_v in_o the_o execution_n of_o their_o ministry_n not_o withstand_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o word_n i_o baptize_v thou_o observe_v in_o our_o church_n seem_v to_o draw_v near_o to_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o confirm_v more_o fit_o and_o full_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o baptize_v and_o to_o answer_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n i_o baptize_v with_o water_n likewise_o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n whereas_o christ_n say_v take_v you_o eat_v you_o do_v you_o this_o as_o speak_v to_o many_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o destroy_v when_o the_o word_n be_v particular_o rehearse_v and_o special_o apply_v in_o our_o church_n say_v take_v thou_o eat_v thou_o drink_v thou_o last_o see_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n be_v a_o outward_a 3._o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v read_v mark_v and_o understand_v wherein_o the_o substance_n and_o comfortatable_a use_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n consist_v it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v publish_v and_o pronounce_v open_o distinct_o plain_o not_o in_o a_o strange_a language_n but_o in_o a_o know_a tongue_n that_o the_o church_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o people_n of_o god_n may_v be_v edify_v for_o wherefore_o serve_v the_o commandment_n and_o promise_n set_v forth_o in_o the_o supper_n if_o they_o be_v not_o understand_v whether_o we_o do_v read_v the_o scripture_n sing_v psalm_n pour_v out_o supplication_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n or_o whatsoever_o 〈◊〉_d we_o perform_v to_o god_n that_o he_o may_v be_v 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o congregation_n instruct_v we_o must_v do_v all_o in_o a_o know_a tongue_n to_o be_v understand_v this_o god_n command_v this_o the_o apostle_n prescribe_v this_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n practise_v this_o reason_n teach_v this_o the_o heathen_a acknowledge_v 〈◊〉_d 9_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n that_o it_o may_v take_v away_o all_o fruit_n and_o comfort_n from_o the_o faithful_a and_o that_o it_o may_v broach_v horrible_a error_n 〈◊〉_d and_o secure_o and_o not_o be_v 〈◊〉_d have_v not_o only_o command_v to_o pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n close_o and_o 〈◊〉_d but_o forbid_v to_o use_v the_o common_a mother_n tongue_n of_o all_o the_o people_n the_o people_n of_o god_n must_v not_o be_v like_o parrot_n or_o 〈◊〉_d or_o raven_n or_o such_o bird_n that_o chatter_v with_o voice_n record_v man_n word_n and_o sound_v a_o sentence_n but_o understande_v not_o the_o meaning_n thereof_o as_o plmy_n 43_o make_v mention_n of_o a_o certain_a 〈◊〉_d that_o have_v learn_v to_o say_v aue_fw-la caesar_n imperator_fw-la all_o hail_n or_o good_a morrow_n emperor_n caesar_n salute_v 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o two_o young_a prince_n 〈◊〉_d and_o drusus_n and_o celius_n rhodiginus_fw-la write_v rhodiginus_fw-la that_o cardinal_n ascanius_n have_v a_o popiniay_v that_o can_v pronounce_v distinct_o and_o 〈◊〉_d all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n such_o bird_n or_o rather_o beast_n will_v they_o have_v christian_a man_n to_o be_v that_o will_v have_v they_o 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o 12_o understand_v what_o they_o pray_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o not_o know_v what_o be_v read_v 〈◊〉_d the_o sacrament_n but_o not_o know_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o institution_n thing_n without_o life_n which_o give_v a_o sound_n whether_o pipe_n or_o 〈◊〉_d except_o they_o make_v a_o distinction_n in_o the_o sound_n how_o shall_v it_o be_v know_v what_o be_v pipe_v or_o harp_v or_o if_o the_o 〈◊〉_d pet_n give_v 8_o a_o 〈◊〉_d sound_n who_o shall_v prepare_v himself_o to_o battle_n all_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n must_v tend_v to_o the_o instruct_v on_o 〈◊〉_d edification_n
28_o and_o so_o let_v he_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup._n where_o he_o give_v a_o double_a commandment_n first_o to_o appear_v reverent_o then_o to_o receive_v worthy_o now_o all_o that_o must_v prove_v and_o try_v themselves_o be_v command_v not_o only_o to_o eat_v bread_n but_o to_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n but_o all_o must_v try_v and_o examine_v themselves_o therefore_o all_o be_v command_v both_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n if_o this_o be_v a_o commandment_n to_o examine_v then_o the_o word_n follow_v of_o eat_v and_o drink_v be_v likewise_o commandment_n there_o be_v no_o halt_n in_o these_o let_v they_o admit_v both_o or_o let_v they_o deny_v both_o eight_o if_o the_o faithful_a take_v not_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o condition_n of_o christian_n under_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v worse_o than_o of_o the_o isralite_n under_o the_o law_n for_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n in_o the_o wilderness_n have_v the_o same_o sacrament_n in_o effect_n with_o we_o 4_o do_v all_o drink_n of_o the_o spiritual_a rock_n that_o follow_v they_o and_o that_o rock_n be_v christ_n as_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v but_o out_o condition_n be_v not_o worse_a and_o weak_a than_o they_o therefore_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v to_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n bellarmine_n the_o sultan_n of_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n 27_o answer_v thus_o they_o drink_v not_o water_n out_o of_o the_o rock_n when_o they_o do_v eat_v of_o the_o spiritual_a meat_n but_o in_o another_o place_n and_o at_o a_o other_o time_n but_o this_o be_v a_o answearlesse_a answer_n which_o can_v satisfy_v for_o albeit_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o isralite_n as_o figure_n and_o type_n do_v represent_v the_o same_o grace_n that_o our_o sacrament_n do_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a they_o shall_v in_o all_o point_n answer_v each_o other_o and_o in_o all_o respect_n agree_v together_o beside_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o no_o time_n allow_v the_o people_n to_o drink_v of_o the_o wine_n a_o seal_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n they_o keep_v they_o from_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n both_o when_o they_o give_v they_o the_o bread_n and_o at_o all_o other_o time_n and_o thereby_o make_v their_o estate_n worse_o than_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o jew_n indeed_o if_o they_o do_v at_o any_o time_n permit_v all_o the_o people_n to_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n they_o may_v pretend_v this_o example_n of_o the_o israelite_n but_o inasmuch_o as_o they_o utter_o deny_v they_o this_o part_n of_o the_o cup_n they_o overthrow_v themselves_o in_o their_o malice_n and_o yet_o in_o their_o blindness_n they_o do_v not_o see_v it_o last_o many_o of_o the_o father_n do_v both_o eat_v manna_n and_o 〈◊〉_d water_n out_o of_o the_o rock_n if_o not_o in_o the_o same_o place_n yet_o at_o one_o &_o the_o same_o time_n 21_o inasmuch_o as_o they_o gather_v thereof_o every_o morning_n and_o it_o cease_v not_o 12_o until_o they_o enter_v the_o frontier_n and_o confine_n of_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n but_o they_o never_o allow_v without_o a_o toleration_n and_o dispensation_n the_o people_n in_o any_o place_n at_o any_o time_n upon_o any_o occasion_n and_o in_o any_o respect_n to_o taste_v of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n nine_o if_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n may_v be_v take_v from_o the_o lord_n people_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o water_n in_o baptism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o from_o they_o for_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n whereby_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v purchase_v and_o procure_v be_v represent_v by_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n as_o well_o as_o by_o the_o water_n in_o baptism_n but_o the_o water_n in_o baptism_n without_o great_a sacrilege_n can_v be_v omit_v or_o neglect_v wherefore_o then_o shall_v the_o cup_n be_v take_v away_o last_o if_o any_o part_n of_o the_o supper_n may_v be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o people_n then_o like_o wise_a the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v be_v take_v from_o they_o for_o in_o this_o point_n there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n and_o respect_n of_o they_o both_o a_o sacrament_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o visible_a word_n and_o a_o seal_n up_o of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o offence_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o same_o whether_o a_o man_n break_v the_o seal_n or_o rend_v the_o writing_n but_o the_o word_n can_v be_v withdraw_v from_o christian_a people_n it_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o life_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o it_o be_v the_o great_a wrong_a and_o injury_n do_v to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n to_o take_v from_o they_o the_o cup_n of_o salvation_n the_o answer_n to_o this_o reason_n must_v be_v to_o confess_v the_o part_n and_o yield_v the_o conclusion_n forasmuch_o as_o by_o forbid_v the_o people_n the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o have_v rob_v they_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o take_v from_o they_o 52_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n neither_o enter_v themselves_o into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n nor_o suffer_v those_o that_o will_v enter_v no_o marvel_v then_o if_o they_o take_v the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n from_o the_o people_n who_o have_v take_v from_o they_o the_o free_a use_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o conclude_v these_o reason_n it_o be_v antichrist_n who_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n contrary_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o supper_n contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o former_a church_n have_v exclude_v the_o people_n languish_v and_o th●●sting_v after_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o dry_a earth_n for_o the_o sweet_a shower_n of_o rain_n from_o take_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o leave_v they_o a_o dry_a communion_n to_o eat_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o sacrament_n alone_o have_v consider_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n by_o sundry_a reason_n ground_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o people_n have_v good_a interest_n and_o title_n in_o the_o cup_n deny_v unto_o they_o let_v we_o answer_v the_o god_n objection_n of_o the_o adversary_n make_v against_o the_o former_a doctrine_n first_o they_o pretend_v that_o christ_n administer_v it_o to_o the_o apostle_n only_o and_o not_o to_o any_o of_o the_o people_n &_o consequent_o the_o institution_n for_o take_v the_o cup_n can_v be_v no_o general_a commandment_n for_o all_o man_n thus_o 14_o the_o rhemiste_n reason_n i_o answer_v first_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v and_o dispute_v whether_o only_o the_o apostle_n be_v present_a at_o his_o last_o supper_n for_o see_v diverse_a be_v add_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n see_v he_o have_v other_o disciple_n beside_o the_o twelve_o see_v many_o godly_a man_n and_o woman_n follow_v he_o to_o see_v his_o miracle_n and_o to_o hear_v the_o gracious_a word_n that_o proceed_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n why_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o none_o of_o they_o be_v admit_v to_o his_o table_n who_o have_v often_o hear_v his_o preach_n and_o depend_v upon_o he_o in_o their_o live_n again_o the_o passover_o be_v celebrate_v in_o that_o house_n 18_o of_o a_o faithful_a man_n as_o may_v be_v collect_v by_o sundry_a circumstance_n now_o they_o either_o the_o lord_n jesus_n annex_v that_o family_n unto_o he_o as_o the_o law_n in_o one_o case_n appoint_v or_o else_o we_o shall_v have_v two_o passovers_a at_o one_o time_n in_o one_o house_n which_o have_v no_o warrant_n of_o scripture_n no_o colour_n of_o truth_n no_o probability_n of_o reason_n we_o read_v in_o the_o institution_n &_o celebration_n of_o the_o passove_a of_o join_v house_n to_o house_n 4_o and_o take_v his_o neighbour_n next_o unto_o he_o in_o case_n of_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o one_o household_n to_o eat_v the_o lamb_n but_o we_o never_o read_v of_o kill_v two_o lamb_n and_o keep_v two_o passover_n under_o one_o roof_n beside_o the_o small_a remnant_n of_o the_o faithful_a among_o the_o jew_n will_v no-doubt_n right_o and_o religious_o observe_v the_o passove_a after_o the_o example_n of_o their_o lord_n and_o master_n rather_o according_a to_o the_o 6_o precept_n of_o moses_n '_o then_o aceord_v to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o imitation_n of_o christ_n 28_o rather_o than_o according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o elder_n furthermore_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o in_o eat_v the_o passover_o they_o sort_v themselves_o together_o according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o person_n able_a to_o eat_v up_o the_o lamb_n for_o they_o command_v to_o take_v 5_o a_o lamb_n without_o blemish_n a_o male_a of_o a_o year_n old_a &_o if_o the_o household_n be_v to_o little_a for_o the_o lamb_n he_o shall_v take_v his_o neighbour_n which_o be_v next_o unto_o
external_a and_o visible_a which_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n and_o beside_o the_o heavenly_a internal_a and_o invisible_a the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n together_o with_o all_o his_o gift_n benefit_n and_o treasure_n according_a to_o 34._o the_o doctrine_n of_o ireneus_fw-la three_o we_o agree_v that_o in_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o be_v make_v partaker_n not_o only_o of_o the_o virtue_n and_o operation_n of_o christ_n but_o of_o the_o very_a essence_n and_o substance_n of_o his_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v give_v for_o we_o to_o death_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v shed_v for_o we_o so_o that_o we_o be_v most_o comfortable_o nourish_v with_o the_o same_o unto_o eternal_a life_n four_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v not_o change_v or_o transubstantiate_v into_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o remain_v true_a and_o natural_a bread_n and_o wine_n in_o substance_n as_o before_o so_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v call_v his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n not_o only_o because_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v signify_v by_o these_o and_o set_v before_o we_o but_o because_o so_o often_o as_o we_o eat_v and_o drink_v they_o worthy_o christ_n himself_o give_v we_o his_o body_n &_o blood_n true_o to_o everlasting_a life_n last_o we_o all_o hold_v the_o use_n of_o the_o supper_n in_o both_o kind_n and_o that_o without_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o outward_a sign_n it_o be_v no_o sacrament_n unless_o the_o bread_n be_v eat_v and_o 〈◊〉_d wine_n drink_v and_o therefore_o we_o condemn_v all_o 〈◊〉_d and_o adoration_n of_o the_o bread_n all_o carry_v it_o about_o and_o lift_v it_o up_o by_o the_o priest_n to_o the_o people_n use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o disagreement_n and_o diversity_n in_o opinion_n among_o we_o be_v in_o certain_a adjoint_v and_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o receive_v sup_n for_o see_v we_o all_o reach_n and_o confess_v the_o true_a communication_n of_o the_o true_a body_n and_o the_o true_a blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o controversy_n must_v needs_o stand_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o communicate_v and_o therefore_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o thereby_o pluck_v 〈◊〉_d the_o difference_n stand_v in_o these_o particular_n first_o one_o part_n contend_v that_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n must_v be_v understand_v literal_o and_o as_o the_o word_n find_v which_o yet_o that_o side_n do_v not_o so_o understand_v the_o other_o part_n hold_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v sacramental_o and_o figurative_o according_a to_o the_o declaration_n of_o christ_n the_o interpretation_n of_o paul_n and_o the_o infallible_a rule_n of_o our_o christian_n faith_n second_o one_o part_n will_v have_v the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n essential_o and_o bodily_a in_o with_o and_o under_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o so_o to_o be_v eat_v as_o that_o together_o with_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n they_o enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n and_o body_n of_o the_o receiver_n but_o the_o other_o part_n hold_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o at_o the_o first_o supper_n sit_v at_o table_n with_o his_o disciple_n do_v not_o now_o continue_v with_o we_o upon_o the_o earth_n but_o abide_v in_o the_o heaven_n and_o shall_v remain_v there_o until_o he_o break_v the_o heaven_n and_o descend_v thence_o to_o judgement_n last_o one_o part_n will_v have_v all_o communicant_n that_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n and_o partake_v the_o outward_a sign_n whether_o they_o come_v worthy_o or_o unworthy_o whether_o they_o be_v believer_n or_o insidel_n whether_o godly_a or_o ungodly_a tó_n eat_v the_o body_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n corporal_o and_o with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n so_o as_o the_o believer_n do_v eat_v he_o to_o life_n and_o salvation_n the_o unbeliever_n to_o death_n and_o damnation_n the_o other_o side_n hold_v that_o the_o unbe_n leever_n abuse_v the_o outward_a sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o their_o destruction_n and_o that_o only_o the_o faithful_a can_v eat_v the_o body_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o a_o true_a faith_n &_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereby_o they_o be_v make_v flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o his_o bone_n be_v more_o near_o and_o firm_o knit_v unto_o he_o than_o the_o member_n of_o our_o body_n be_v unite_v to_o our_o head_n and_o thereby_o draw_v from_o he_o life_n everlasting_a these_o be_v brief_o the_o point_n of_o difference_n faithfu_o not_o partial_o particular_o not_o confuse_o set_v down_o in_o discuss_v the_o truth_n whereof_o howsoever_o great_a bitterness_n have_v 〈◊〉_d break_v out_o between_o brother_n as_o likewise_o do_v between_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n yet_o set_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o disputation_n aside_o they_o be_v worthy_a member_n of_o the_o church_n zealous_a defender_n of_o the_o faith_n learned_a teacher_n of_o the_o truth_n earnest_a destroyer_n of_o heresy_n and_o rare_a example_n of_o golines_n notwithstanding_o the_o infirmity_n imperfection_n and_o intemperate_a stile_n of_o the_o one_o part_n and_o howsoever_o this_o odious_a mak-bate_a 14_o n._n d._n bold_o avouch_v pag._n 46._o that_o these_o man_n never_o meet_v 〈◊〉_d to_o compound_v their_o controversy_n but_o they_o have_v always_o depart_v more_o disagree_v &_o more_o enemy_n theu_o ever_o they_o be_v before_o their_o meeting_n yet_o all_o man_n know_v he_o do_v either_o ignorant_o or_o malicious_o conceal_v the_o several_a point_n of_o their_o latin_a union_n and_o agreement_n conclude_v and_o subscribe_v at_o marpurge_n anno_fw-la 1529._o cha_n 15._o which_o be_v in_o this_o sort_n credimn_v &_o 〈◊〉_d omnes_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o all_o believe_v and_o profess_v concern_v the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o the_o use_v there_o of_o in_o both_o kind_n according_a to_o the_o inctitution_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v and_o that_o the_o mass_n be_v not_o any_o such_o work_n whereby_o one_o man_n may_v obtain_v grace_n for_o another_o whether_o he_o be_v dead_a or_o alive_a also_o that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ._n and_o that_o the_o spiritual_a eat_n of_o the_o same_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v very_o necessary_a for_o every_o christian_n man_n moreover_o that_o the_o use_n of_o this_o sacrament_n even_o as_o the_o word_n itself_o be_v institute_v of_o almighty_a god_n to_o stir_v up_o unto_o faith_n the_o weak_a conscience_n of_o man_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o although_o it_o can_v not_o hither_o to_o be_v altogether_o agree_v amòg_v we_o whether_o the_o true_a body_n &_o blood_n of_o ch_z be_v in_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n corporal_o yet_o nevertheless_o both_o party_n ought_v to_o declare_v christian_n charity_n one_o towards_o the_o other_o so_o far_o as_o conscience_n can_v bear_v and_o both_o part_n shall_v diligent_o pray_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o by_o his_o spirit_n may_v vouchsafe_v to_o establish_v unto_o we_o the_o true_a understàding_n of_o that_o matter_n a_o man_n in_o this_o act_n which_o be_v subscribe_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o luther_n melanthou_fw-mi brentius_n 〈◊〉_d oecolampadius_n bucer_n and_o other_o we_o see_v they_o profess_v christian_n charity_n and_o promise_v earnest_o to_o pray_v unto_o god_n to_o reveile_v his_o truth_n unto_o they_o bring_v they_o to_o be_v of_o one_o hart_n in_o the_o truth_n and_o confirm_v they_o to_o discern_v of_o thing_n that_o differ_v so_o 〈◊〉_d the_o enemy_n of_o our_o church_n have_v cause_n rather_o to_o envy_v our_o agreement_n then_o to_o in_o veigh_v against_o our_o disagreement_n it_o be_v not_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o true_a church_n to_o delight_n in_o contention_n it_o be_v the_o fashion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o command_v to_o compel_v to_o enforce_v to_o press_v to_o oppress_v to_o ban_v to_o throw_v out_o curse_n and_o to_o thunder_v out_o excommunation_n against_o those_o that_o dissent_n from_o they_o but_o our_o church_n not_o withstand_v this_o variance_n have_v not_o so_o proceed_v one_o against_o another_o as_o enemy_n we_o curse_v not_o but_o bless_v we_o hate_v not_o but_o love_n we_o parsecure_v not_o but_o pray_v one_o for_o another_o keep_v the_o groundwork_n of_o faith_n 〈◊〉_d join_v heart_n and_o hand_n we_o seek_v to_o repair_v the_o ruin_n of_o zion_n and_o pull_v down_o the_o fortress_n of_o the_o enemy_n thereof_o moreover_o albeit_o it_o be_v to_o be_v presume_v in_o man_n of_o judgement_n and_o discretion_n that_o such_o as_o have_v leisure_n with_o delight_n themselves_o and_o pleasure_n to_o paint_v out_o the_o jar_n and_o quarrel_n abroad_o either_o be_v or_o doubtless_o shall_v be_v in_o league_n and_o love_n at_o home_n yet_o
the_o badge_n of_o christianity_n or_o a_o treatise_n of_o the_o sacrament_n full_o declare_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wherein_o the_o truth_n itself_o be_v prove_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n maintain_v and_o the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v evident_o convince_v by_o peruse_v whereof_o the_o discreet_a reader_n may_v easy_o perceive_v the_o weak_a and_o unstable_a ground_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n and_o the_o just_a cause_n of_o our_o lawful_a separation_n divide_v into_o three_o book_n 1._o of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o general_n 2._o of_o baptism_n 3_o of_o the_o lord_n supper_n show_v the_o intention_n of_o this_o present_a work_n open_v the_o difference_n among_o we_o about_o the_o question_n of_o the_o supper_n discover_v the_o idolatry_n and_o division_n of_o the_o popish_a clergy_n and_o unmask_v the_o insolent_a brag_n of_o the_o late_a warn-word_n touch_v the_o suppose_a and_o pretend_a unity_n thereof_o by_o william_n attersoll_n minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 1._o cor._n 12_o 13._o for_o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n whether_o we_o be_v jew_n or_o grecian_n whether_o bond_n or_o free_a and_o have_v be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n august_n tract_n 80_o in_o johan._n 13._o accedat_fw-la verbum_fw-la ad_fw-la elementum_fw-la et_fw-la fit_a sacramentum_fw-la that_o be_v join_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n institution_n with_o the_o outward_a sign_n and_o thereof_o be_v make_v a_o sacrament_n print_a by_o w._n jaggard_n dwell_v in_o barbican_n 1606._o to_o the_o right_n worshipful_a sir_n john_n shurley_n knight_n one_o of_o his_o majesty_n justice_n of_o the_o peace_n in_o the_o county_n of_o sussex_n grace_n and_o peace_n in_o jesus_n christ._n right_o worshipful_a it_o be_v not_o unknown_a that_o fundry_a mean_n have_v from_o time_n to_o time_n be_v offer_v and_o use_v for_o the_o reclaim_n and_o recover_v of_o such_o as_o dangerous_o follow_v the_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o daily_o revoult_v to_o the_o romish_a religion_n which_o have_v be_v advance_v by_o tyranny_n defend_v by_o lie_n and_o be_v now_o seek_v to_o be_v restore_v again_o by_o treachery_n and_o rebellion_n but_o notwithstanding_o the_o many_o mean_n which_o heretofore_o have_v be_v wise_o practise_v we_o see_v of_o late_a the_o adversary_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o a_o pestilent_a brood_n of_o viper_n mighty_o to_o increase_v and_o multiply_v send_v abroad_o swarm_n of_o their_o jesuit_n and_o seminary_n priest_n not_o only_o to_o infect_v the_o people_n of_o the_o land_n with_o the_o leaven_n of_o false_a doctrine_n and_o to_o sow_v their_o darnel_n in_o the_o lord_n field_n but_o to_o seduce_v they_o from_o their_o allegiance_n and_o to_o stir_v up_o sedition_n for_o the_o lessen_v of_o who_o number_n and_o suppress_n of_o their_o power_n nothing_o be_v more_o necessary_a then_o to_o establish_v a_o godly_a and_o learned_a ministry_n in_o every_o congregation_n and_o howsoever_o wholesome_a law_n have_v be_v enact_v penalty_n increase_v conference_n with_o they_o use_v disputation_n offer_v their_o book_n answer_v and_o sundry_a other_o way_n take_v by_o magistrate_n and_o minister_n yet_o we_o shall_v never_o attain_v the_o end_n of_o our_o desire_a hope_n until_o every_o church_n have_v a_o learned_a and_o painful_a pastor_n to_o be_v resident_a and_o remain_v among_o they_o for_o albeit_o antichrist_n in_o this_o noble_a kingdom_n have_v long_o since_o receive_v a_o notable_a foil_n and_o fall_v and_o the_o purple_a whore_n be_v dismount_v from_o her_o usurp_a dignity_n yet_o this_o monster_n have_v take_v this_o deadly_a wound_n will_v be_v always_o look_v back_o and_o seek_v to_o set_v his_o foot_n again_o in_o this_o realm_n if_o good_a corn_n be_v pull_v up_o and_o the_o weed_n suffer_v to_o grow_v or_o if_o the_o strong_a pillar_n bear_v up_o the_o house_n be_v remove_v and_o rot_a post_n set_v to_o under_o prop_n it_o and_o unless_o he_o be_v quell_v and_o conquer_v by_o the_o preach_n &_o publish_v 2_o of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ._n therefore_o christ_n our_o saviour_n have_v send_v out_o the_o 70._o disciple_n into_o every_o 1_o city_n and_o place_n whether_o he_o himself_o shall_v come_v to_o prepare_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n after_o their_o return_n say_v unto_o they_o i_o see_v satan_n like_o lightning_n fall_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o the_o apostle_n declare_v that_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n lead_v captivity_n captive_a `8_n he_o give_v gift_n to_o man_n and_o ordain_v pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o gather_v together_o of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n and_o until_o this_o holy_a order_n and_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n 16_o which_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n unto_o all_o that_o believe_v be_v set_v up_o we_o can_v conceive_v no_o hope_n how_o the_o ignorant_a shall_v be_v instruct_v &_o the_o seduce_v be_v regain_v out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o such_o deceitful_a woorkman_n as_o under_o a_o colour_n of_o conversion_n of_o the_o land_n do_v seek_v the_o utter_a subversion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o common_a wealth_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o jesuit_n who_o have_v get_v the_o dominion_n over_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o generation_n spare_v no_o labour_n refuse_v no_o pain_n let_v pass_v no_o practice_n by_o word_n or_o writing_n to_o effect_v their_o purpose_n in_o regard_n of_o who_o unweariable_a diligence_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o many_o of_o we_o have_v be_v too_o slack_a &_o slothful_a in_o resist_v the_o approach_n of_o these_o violent_a intruder_n for_o while_o we_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o 18_o reconciliation_n even_o christ_n crucify_v &_o build_v up_o our_o people_n in_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v according_a 1_o to_o godliness_n we_o do_v not_o bend_v our_o force_n as_o we_o ought_v to_o surprise_v and_o suppress_v the_o common_a adversary_n while_o we_o sow_v the_o lord_n field_n with_o good_a corn_n we_o suffer_v 25_o the_o envious_a man_n to_o scatter_v his_o tare_n account_v it_o sufficient_a to_o teach_v the_o truth_n to_o the_o 2_o flock_n dedend_v upon_o we_o and_o esteem_v it_o better_a service_n to_o god_n to_o save_v one_o soul_n then_o to_o overthrow_v and_o destroy_v many_o adversary_n not_o much_o unlike_a to_o scipio_n african_n the_o roman_a captain_n who_o as_o plutarch_n witness_v be_v oftentimes_o wont_a to_o say_v that_o he_o have_v rather_o save_v the_o life_n of_o one_o roman_a citizen_n then_o to_o kill_v and_o conquer_v a_o thousand_o enemy_n but_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o 〈◊〉_d good_a builder_n not_o only_o to_o rear_v up_o the_o work_n in_o hand_n but_o to_o remove_v the_o rubbadge_n and_o relic_n that_o hinder_v the_o build_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o good_a husbandman_n not_o only_o to_o sow_v his_o field_n with_o good_a seed_n but_o to_o pluck_v up_o the_o weed_n and_o gtub_n up_o the_o thorn_n that_o choke_v the_o corn_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o good_a 〈◊〉_d watchman_n not_o only_o to_o see_v to_o they_o in_o the_o city_n but_o to_o descry_v and_o discover_v the_o enemy_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o painful_a shepherd_n not_o only_o to_o feed_v the_o sheep_n but_o to_o follow_v and_o find_v out_o the_o foot_n step_v of_o the_o wolf_n here_o upon_o the_o apostle_n paul_n exhort_v the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n 33_o to_o take_v heed_n to_o themselves_o and_o to_o all_o the_o flock_n whereof_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v they_o overseer_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n because_o after_o his_o departure_n grievous_a wolf_n shall_v enter_v in_o not_o spare_v the_o flock_n but_o speak_v perverse_a thing_n to_o draw_v desciple_n after_o they_o if_o then_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o people_n be_v vigilant_a and_o watchful_a to_o seduce_v the_o simple_a and_o to_o subvert_v religion_n how_o careful_a and_o cheerful_a aught_o we_o to_o be_v not_o only_o to_o teach_v the_o people_n commit_v to_o our_o charge_n but_o to_o resist_v with_o hand_n and_o heart_n all_o those_o that_o undermine_v the_o good_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n among_o us._n like_a unto_o the_o people_n of_o god_n after_o the_o return_n from_o captivity_n who_o do_v 17_o build_v the_o wall_n with_o one_o hand_n and_o hold_v their_o sword_n and_o weapon_n in_o the_o other_o for_o this_o cause_n i_o have_v put_v in_o write_v this_o treatise_n follow_v contain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o the_o badge_n of_o christian_n whereby_o all_o discreet_a and_o indifferent_a man_n may_v perceive_v the_o truth_n of_o they_o clear_o open_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o
body_n wherefore_o they_o do_v word_n more_o seal_v up_o then_o the_o word_n not_o that_o god_n be_v more_o true_a of_o his_o promise_n when_o he_o work_v by_o sign_n then_o when_o he_o speak_v by_o his_o word_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o teach_v and_o receive_v because_o by_o his_o sacrament_n he_o represent_v his_o promise_n as_o it_o be_v paint_v in_o a_o table_n etc._n and_o set_v they_o forth_o lively_a as_o in_o a_o picture_n before_o our_o eye_n that_o we_o may_v not_o only_o hear_v but_o see_v handle_v touch_n taste_n and_o even_o digest_v they_o again_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v more_o effectual_o declare_v and_o seal_v up_o by_o the_o sacrament_n then_o by_o the_o bare_a word_n not_o for_o the_o substance_n and_o matter_n itself_o but_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o work_v which_o be_v heedful_a perfect_a and_o more_o effectual_a so_o as_o that_o which_o we_o perceive_v and_o receive_v by_o many_o sense_n as_o hear_v and_o see_v be_v more_o sure_a and_o certain_a then_o that_o which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d by_o hear_v only_o hitherto_o of_o the_o agreement_n and_o difference_n between_o the_o word_n &_o sacrament_n and_o we_o have_v show_v that_o so_o soon_o as_o god_n give_v his_o word_n immediate_o he_o second_v the_o same_o with_o his_o sacrament_n the_o use_n which_o we_o be_v to_o make_v hereof_o be_v 1._o these_o first_o see_v god_n content_v not_o himself_o with_o the_o word_n only_o but_o add_v the_o sacrament_n in_o all_o age_n and_o time_n of_o the_o church_n which_o proceed_v partly_o through_o his_o own_o goodness_n and_o partly_o from_o man_n weakness_n we_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o far_o from_o despise_v the_o sacrament_n that_o contrariwise_a we_o must_v confess_v the_o benefit_n use_n and_o worthiness_n of_o they_o can_v never_o be_v sufficient_o magnify_v and_o commend_v nor_o they_o with_o sufficient_a reverence_n be_v receive_v we_o be_v dull_a to_o conceive_v his_o promise_n and_o slow_a to_o remember_v they_o we_o be_v full_a of_o doubt_v and_o unbelief_n we_o be_v like_a to_o thomas_n 25._o one_o of_o the_o disciple_n we_o will_v not_o believe_v they_o until_o in_o some_o sort_n we_o see_v they_o and_o in_o some_o measure_n feel_v they_o in_o our_o heart_n wherefore_o god_n have_v ordain_v these_o mystery_n and_o holy_a action_n to_o keep_v in_o continual_a memory_n his_o great_a benefit_n bestow_v upon_o man_n to_o seal_v up_o his_o promise_n and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o offer_v unto_o our_o sight_n those_o thing_n which_o inward_o he_o perform_v to_o we_o and_o thereby_o by_o strengthen_v and_o increase_v our_o faith_n through_o the_o work_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o our_o soul_n see_v then_o the_o word_n be_v not_o sufficient_a but_o the_o sacrament_n be_v add_v for_o further_a assurance_n we_o must_v in_o this_o behalf_n consider_v the_o great_a goodness_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o who_o do_v not_o only_o give_v we_o faith_n by_o his_o word_n as_o by_o his_o save_a instrument_n but_o have_v also_o add_v to_o his_o word_n sacrament_n or_o seal_n of_o his_o promise_n and_o grace_n that_o by_o the_o lawful_a use_n of_o they_o he_o may_v uphold_v and_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n through_o his_o bless_a spirit_n for_o in_o asmuch_o as_o the_o lord_n not_o only_o send_v the_o bless_a seed_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o for_o the_o bruise_v of_o the_o serpent_n head_n but_o ordain_v for_o we_o sacrament_n to_o be_v pledge_n of_o his_o promise_n testimony_n of_o his_o faithfulness_n and_o remedy_n of_o our_o distrust_n we_o must_v confess_v and_o thankful_o acknowledge_v the_o bottomless_a depth_n of_o god_n endless_a mercy_n towards_o we_o who_o vouchsafe_v to_o be_v our_o god_n to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o we_o be_v vile_a and_o miserable_a sinner_n to_o make_v a_o league_n and_o covenant_n with_o dust_n and_o ash_n and_o delyvers_a his_o only_a son_n to_o suffer_v the_o shameful_a death_n of_o the_o cross_n for_o us._n and_o withal_o we_o must_v labour_v more_o and_o more_o to_o feel_v our_o own_o blindness_n distrust_n infidelity_n and_o perverse_a nature_n we_o will_v easy_o forget_v this_o mercy_n of_o god_n unless_o it_o have_v be_v continual_o represent_v before_o our_o eye_n again_o see_v nothing_o be_v offer_v and_o give_v in_o the_o sacrament_n 2._o which_o be_v not_o publish_v in_o the_o gospel_n see_v they_o can_v be_v where_o there_o be_v no_o word_n and_o see_v the_o same_o christ_n with_o all_o his_o benefit_n be_v propound_v in_o both_o it_o meet_v with_o a_o common_a corruption_n and_o lamentable_a practice_n among_o many_o professor_n that_o desire_n and_o crave_v especial_o in_o sickness_n and_o extremety_n often_o to_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n but_o esteem_v little_a of_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n and_o that_o seem_v to_o languish_v with_o a_o longing_n after_o the_o sacrament_n but_o never_o mourn_v and_o lament_v for_o want_v of_o the_o word_n which_o be_v as_o great_a a_o error_n and_o madness_n as_o if_o one_o shall_v ever_o look_v upon_o the_o seal_n of_o his_o write_n but_o never_o regard_v the_o conveyance_n of_o his_o estate_n be_v there_o not_o one_o god_n the_o author_n of_o both_o be_v there_o not_o one_o spirit_n that_o seal_v up_o his_o promise_n by_o both_o be_v christ_n divide_v that_o speak_v evident_o unto_o we_o in_o both_o how_o be_v it_o then_o that_o many_o desire_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o seem_v to_o pine_v away_o through_o want_n thereof_o who_o never_o wish_v or_o regard_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o food_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n the_o immortal_a seed_n of_o regeneration_n and_o the_o high_a ordinance_n of_o god_n to_o save_v those_o 14._o that_o believe_v and_o whence_o proceed_v it_o but_o from_o palpable_a ignorance_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o god_n and_o their_o own_o salvation_n to_o be_v much_o trouble_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o bring_v unto_o they_o and_o yet_o never_o conet_n to_o have_v a_o word_n of_o comfort_n speak_v to_o they_o in_o due_a season_n let_v all_o such_o person_n understand_v that_o as_o the_o minister_n 46._o be_v charge_v from_o god_n to_o teach_v every_o saboth_n day_n and_o to_o preach_v the_o word_n in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n to_o deal_v the_o bread_n to_o the_o hungry_a and_o to_o gie_n unto_o every_o one_o in_o the_o family_n his_o portion_n so_o be_v it_o require_v of_o all_o the_o people_n to_o desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v grow_v thereby_o which_o howsoever_o it_o be_v to_o they_o that_o perish_v foolishness_n yet_o to_o such_o as_o be_v call_v 24._o it_o be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o god_n wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o make_v account_n that_o there_o be_v less_o danger_n in_o neglect_v the_o word_n of_o god_n then_o in_o neglect_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n but_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o while_o we_o willing_o desire_v the_o one_o we_o do_v not_o willing_o despise_v the_o other_o for_o we_o must_v careful_o consider_v that_o as_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o visible_a word_n so_o the_o word_n be_v a_o speak_a sacrament_n and_o as_o god_n lift_v up_o his_o voice_n unto_o we_o in_o the_o one_o so_o he_o reach_v out_o his_o hand_n unto_o we_o in_o the_o other_o we_o must_v as_o well_o hear_v when_o he_o call_v as_o receive_v when_o he_o offer_v now_o by_o his_o word_n preach_v he_o call_v by_o his_o sacrament_n administer_v he_o offer_v his_o grace_n unto_o we_o and_o as_o we_o must_v have_v ear_n for_o the_o one_o so_o must_v we_o have_v hand_n for_o the_o other_o chap._n 2._o what_o a_o sacrament_n be_v in_o every_o treatise_n and_o discourse_n it_o be_v necessary_a first_o to_o know_v 1._o whether_o a_o thing_n be_v before_o we_o consider_v what_o it_o be_v we_o have_v hear_v before_o that_o there_o be_v sacrament_n and_o ever_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n now_o then_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o they_o be_v that_o 1._o first_o the_o matter_n handle_v may_v be_v define_v for_o in_o vain_a we_o shall_v reason_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n unless_o we_o understand_v what_o a_o sacrament_n be_v but_o besore_n we_o set_v down_o any_o description_n of_o it_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o speak_v some_o what_o of_o the_o word_n the_o name_n in_o so_o many_o letter_n and_o syllable_n be_v scripture_n not_o indeed_o in_o the_o scripture_n no_o more_o than_o the_o word_n trinity_n catholic_a consubstantial_a and_o such_o like_a which_o be_v general_o receive_v be_v not_o to_o be_v reject_v see_v the_o doctrine_n contain_v under_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o
a_o sacrament_n the_o outward_a part_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v under_o a_o certain_a similitude_n &_o likeness_n do_v represent_v and_o signify_v heavenly_a thing_n to_o assure_v we_o they_o be_v as_o true_o present_a and_o offer_v we_o as_o we_o behold_v with_o our_o eye_n and_o receive_v with_o our_o hand_n the_o earthly_a thing_n give_v unto_o us._n the_o outward_a part_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v in_o number_n sacrament_n four_o first_o the_o minister_n second_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n three_o the_o element_n four_o the_o receiver_n all_o these_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o be_v needful_a to_o the_o be_v and_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n take_v they_o away_o or_o any_o of_o they_o and_o you_o take_v away_o the_o substance_n and_o bring_v in_o a_o nullity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n if_o there_o be_v no_o minister_n no_o word_n no_o element_n no_o receiver_n there_o be_v no_o sacrament_n if_o there_o be_v want_v either_o minister_n to_o deliver_v it_o or_o word_n to_o 〈◊〉_d it_o or_o element_n to_o represent_v it_o or_o receiver_n to_o take_v it_o we_o can_v assure_v ourselves_o to_o have_v any_o sacrament_n of_o god_n but_o rather_o a_o tradition_n and_o invention_n of_o our_o own_o first_o then_o sacram_fw-la there_o be_v require_v a_o minister_n lawful_o call_v choose_v and_o ordain_v have_v at_o the_o least_o the_o approbation_n and_o allowance_n of_o the_o church_n to_o pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n and_o to_o deliver_v the_o outward_a sign_n to_o the_o receiver_n they_o be_v not_o maker_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o minister_n not_o autor_n but_o administator_n not_o devisor_n but_o deliverer_n earthly_a prince_n have_v their_o letter_n patent_n &_o their_o great_a seal_n &_o keeper_n of_o the_o same_o if_o another_o shall_v set_v to_o the_o seal_n that_o be_v not_o appoint_v the_o keeper_n thereof_o be_v it_o not_o make_v a_o heinons_n crime_n worthy_a of_o heavy_a punishment_n so_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o mighty_a prince_n king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n he_o have_v appoint_v his_o seal_n to_o seal_v up_o his_o promise_n of_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n and_o he_o have_v ordain_v his_o officer_n as_o it_o be_v keeper_n of_o his_o great_a seal_n god_n publish_v salvation_n and_o pardon_n to_o all_o believer_n by_o his_o word_n as_o by_o his_o letter_n patent_n and_o he_o add_v baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n as_o two_o broad_a seal_n for_o great_a assurance_n and_o confirmation_n and_o appoint_v the_o minister_n to_o be_v keeper_n thereof_o whosoever_o therefore_o shall_v presume_v to_o 〈◊〉_d to_o any_o of_o these_o seal_n without_o warrant_n without_o a_o cal_a without_o a_o function_n and_o direction_n from_o god_n himself_o be_v no_o officer_n no_o minister_n no_o keeper_n of_o they_o prophane_v these_o seal_n and_o set_v to_o a_o counterfeit_a stamp_n for_o as_o no_o man_n may_v preach_v 15._o except_o he_o be_v send_v so_o no_o man_n may_v administer_v the_o sacrament_n except_o he_o be_v call_v this_o be_v it_o the_o 5._o apostle_n teach_v no_o man_n take_v this_o honour_n unto_o himself_o but_o he_o that_o be_v call_v of_o god_n as_o be_v aron_n and_o christ_n take_v not_o to_o himself_o this_o honour_n to_o be_v make_v the_o high_a priest_n but_o he_o that_o 〈◊〉_d unto_o he_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n beget_v i_o thou_o give_v it_o to_o he_o now_o to_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o honour_n in_o the_o church_n which_o none_o can_v take_v to_o himself_o at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n but_o god_n must_v give_v it_o they_o shall_v have_v in_o their_o own_o conscience_n a_o witness_n of_o god_n call_v they_o to_o this_o office_n and_o honour_n wherefore_o the_o sacred_a function_n ordain_v of_o god_n must_v not_o be_v profane_v by_o voluntary_a officer_n and_o usurp_a office_n no_o man_n must_v take_v upon_o he_o without_o a_o lawful_a calling_n to_o teach_v hese_fw-mi holy_a mystery_n of_o these_o 21._o the_o lord_n complaineh_fw-it i_o have_v not_o send_v these_o prophet_n yet_o they_o run_v i_o have_v not_o speak_v to_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o prophesy_v thus_o these_o intruder_n do_v thrust_v their_o sickle_n into_o other_o man_n corn_n the_o reason_n sacrament_n why_o the_o minister_n and_o no_o other_o be_v to_o intermeddle_v with_o the_o sacrament_n be_v very_o apparent_a first_o because_o every_o part_n and_o member_n of_o the_o church_n have_v his_o especial_a office_n and_o his_o proper_a gift_n to_o execute_v his_o 〈◊〉_d we_o see_v in_o a_o camp_n the_o soldier_n in_o war_n have_v their_o standing-place_n in_o sight_n of_o their_o captain_n who_o have_v choose_v they_o to_o be_v warrior_n so_o in_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d every_o one_o keep_v his_o several_a call_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n who_o have_v in_o wisdom_n and_o mercy_n call_v he_o thereunto_o we_o see_v in_o the_o natural_a disposition_n of_o the_o body_n 3._o every_o member_n have_v his_o special_a use_n the_o eye_n to_o see_v the_o hand_n to_o handle_v the_o foot_n to_o walk_v the_o ear_n to_o hear_v and_o if_o one_o member_n shall_v encroach_v upon_o the_o office_n of_o another_o it_o must_v needs_o tend_v to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o body_n we_o see_v in_o the_o government_n of_o a_o house_n and_o family_n the_o husband_n and_o wife_n the_o father_n and_o son_n the_o master_n and_o servant_n know_v and_o acknowledge_v their_o place_n to_o rule_v to_o obey_v to_o command_v to_o be_v command_v without_o intrude_a themselves_o and_o encroach_a upon_o the_o function_n as_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o freehold_n of_o a_o other_o if_o we_o will_v ascend_v a_o step_n high_o we_o observe_v in_o the_o affair_n of_o state_n 〈◊〉_d and_o matter_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n every_o man_n do_v keep_v within_o his_o own_o list_n and_o limit_n and_o no_o man_n dare_v presume_v to_o charge_v any_o man_n or_o enterprise_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o princess_n name_n and_o authority_n without_o a_o sufficient_a warrant_n from_o the_o prince_n himself_o so_o may_v no_o man_n take_v upon_o he_o any_o function_n in_o the_o church_n unless_o he_o have_v a_o commission_n and_o commandment_n from_o the_o lord_n for_o as_o the_o prince_n appoint_v by_o what_o officer_n he_o will_v be_v serve_v so_o be_v it_o in_o the_o office_n and_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n god_n have_v place_v and_o ordain_v the_o apostle_n to_o plant_v the_o evangelist_n to_o second_v and_o assist_v the_o prophet_n to_o prophesy_v the_o pastor_n to_o feed_v and_o have_v set_v every_o one_o 14._o in_o his_o proper_a place_n and_o stand_v as_o i_o be_v in_o his_o watchtower_n out_o of_o which_o he_o must_v not_o wander_v and_o depart_v let_v every_o man_n abide_v in_o the_o same_o vocation_n wherein_o he_o 5._o be_v call_v and_o afterward_o let_v every_o man_n wherein_o he_o be_v call_v therein_o abide_v with_o god_n whosoever_o therefore_o meddle_v without_o a_o lawful_a vocation_n as_o it_o be_v violent_o invade_v another_o man_n possession_n and_o can_v do_v it_o without_o the_o check_n and_o controlment_n of_o christ_n jesu_n who_o be_v the_o 14._o captain_n of_o his_o own_o host_n the_o 15._o head_n of_o his_o own_o body_n the_o 6._o lord_n of_o his_o own_o house_n and_o the_o 5_o great_a king_n of_o his_o own_o church_n again_o christ_n the_o prophet_n and_o teacher_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o pastor_n have_v commit_v the_o office_n of_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o those_o alone_a to_o who_o he_o have_v commit_v the_o dispensation_n of_o his_o word_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o if_o any_o other_o 〈◊〉_d set_v to_o the_o seal_n it_o be_v no_o true_a seal_n but_o a_o counterfeit_a stamp_n the_o truth_n of_o this_o appear_v indeed_o i_o haptize_v 11._o with_o water_n that_o be_v i_o that_o be_o appoint_v a_o techer_n in_o the_o church_n to_o make_v ready_a a_o people_n prepare_v for_o the_o lord_n and_o paul_n be_v convert_v and_o call_v to_o preach_v &_o to_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o the_o gentile_n do_v without_o further_a word_n warrant_v or_o commandment_n minister_v the_o sacrament_n now_o then_o as_o we_o have_v see_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n let_v 1._o we_o consider_v the_o use_n thereof_o first_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o a_o principal_a part_n of_o christ_n institution_n then_o he_o must_v consider_v it_o be_v his_o duty_n be_v authorise_v from_o god_n and_o by_o his_o church_n to_o sanctify_v the_o outward_a element_n and_o administer_v the_o same_o to_o deliver_v the_o outward_a sign_n and_o offer_v they_o to_o the_o receiver_n his_o work_n therefore_o be_v to_o put_v a_o part_n and_o consecrate_v the_o sign_n to_o a_o holy_a use_n to_o open_v and_o
the_o holyghost_n he_o breathe_v on_o they_o and_o say_v 22._o receive_v the_o holyghost_n the_o corporal_a blast_n and_o breathe_n be_v not_o the_o holyghost_n but_o he_o add_v his_o word_n and_o promise_n with_o the_o outward_a sign_n to_o assure_v they_o that_o with_o the_o breathe_n he_o bestow_v a_o blessing_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o the_o sacrament_n have_v the_o word_n always_o join_v with_o they_o and_o without_o the_o word_n whereby_o their_o institution_n and_o use_n be_v declare_v they_o be_v as_o a_o dead_a body_n without_o life_n as_o a_o dumb_a show_n without_o voice_n as_o a_o empty_a cloud_n without_o water_n and_o as_o a_o barren_a tree_n without_o fruit_n let_v we_o apply_v this_o doctrine_n to_o ourselves_o first_o it_o teach_v 1._o that_o they_o partake_v not_o the_o sacrament_n aright_o that_o have_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o word_n that_o be_v ignorant_a both_o of_o the_o ordinance_n and_o institution_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o promise_n annex_v to_o the_o institution_n of_o god_n of_o which_o sort_n there_o be_v many_o in_o the_o world_n that_o never_o labour_v to_o know_v what_o he_o have_v appoint_v and_o command_v they_o to_o do_v if_o they_o do_v as_o other_o of_o the_o church_n do_v therein_o they_o rest_v and_o seek_v no_o further_o to_o be_v able_a to_o warrant_v their_o own_o work_n if_o they_o hear_v the_o word_n speak_v if_o they_o see_v the_o body_n wash_v the_o bread_n break_v and_o the_o wine_n pour_v out_o and_o receive_v the_o outward_a sign_n they_o regatd_v no_o more_o they_o go_v no_o high_o they_o imagine_v they_o have_v do_v enough_o all_o they_o never_o desire_v to_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v comfortable_a to_o be_v understand_v and_o profitable_a to_o be_v mark_v if_o a_o man_n have_v good_n befall_v or_o legacy_n bequeath_v unto_o he_o by_o any_o will_n or_o testament_n will_v he_o not_o resort_v to_o his_o learned_a counsel_n to_o be_v careful_a to_o understand_v the_o testament_n and_o know_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o testator_n christ_n jesus_n before_o his_o death_n make_v his_o will_n he_o have_v make_v his_o child_n heir_n of_o his_o promise_n he_o promise_v to_o they_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n in_o this_o life_n and_o eternal_a life_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v do_v it_o not_o now_o behoove_v every_o faithful_a christian_a to_o search_n into_o it_o and_o know_v what_o be_v promise_v and_o bequeath_v unto_o he_o man_n of_o this_o world_n for_o the_o most_o part_n make_v their_o elder_a and_o first_o bear_v heir_n of_o all_o and_o leave_v little_a to_o the_o other_o but_o poor_a every_o child_n of_o god_n be_v as_o the_o elder_a and_o as_o the_o 22._o first_o bear_v most_o dear_a to_o he_o he_o shall_v receive_v his_o double_a portion_n the_o second_o shall_v have_v no_o less_o than_o the_o first_o nor_o the_o three_o less_o than_o the_o second_o nor_o the_o young_a than_o the_o elder_a the_o first_o shall_v be_v as_o the_o last_o and_o the_o last_o as_o the_o first_o for_o he_o may_v do_v with_o his_o own_o as_o he_o list_v again_o if_o a_o man_n do_v leave_v all_o his_o son_n heir_n and_o rich_a inheritor_n for_o the_o most_o part_n less_o be_v 〈◊〉_d on_o the_o daughter_n but_o all_o the_o child_n of_o god_n both_o his_o son_n and_o daughter_n 7._o shall_v be_v heir_n even_o the_o heir_n of_o god_n and_o heir_n annex_v with_o christ_n jesus_n their_o share_n shall_v be_v as_o great_a as_o the_o portion_n of_o son_n moreover_o when_o a_o man_n have_v pass_v all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n in_o cark_n and_o care_n what_o can_v he_o give_v to_o his_o pofterity_n but_o earthly_a riches_n &_o transitory_a possession_n a_o fade_a inheritance_n leave_v they_o inheritor_n as_o well_o of_o his_o sorrow_n as_o of_o his_o substance_n it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o the_o child_n of_o god_n christ_n by_o his_o last_o will_n and_o testament_n have_v promise_v to_o make_v his_o people_n sound_a in_o faith_n rich_a in_o hope_n bless_v in_o the_o pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o this_o be_v a_o great_a and_o unspeakable_a comfort_n to_o all_o god_n child_n whether_o high_a or_o low_o whether_o rich_a or_o poor_a so_o then_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v much_o more_o careful_a and_o earnest_a to_o know_v thorough_o and_o understand_v perfect_o the_o will_n of_o christ_n than_o any_o natural_a child_n be_v to_o search_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o will_n of_o his_o natural_a father_n and_o if_o man_n be_v not_o whole_o carnal_a they_o will_v be_v thus_o far_o fpiritual_o mind_v again_o be_v the_o word_n a_o outward_a part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 2._o then_o the_o sacrament_n must_v never_o be_v separate_v and_o set_v a_o part_n from_o the_o word_n they_o be_v not_o dumb_a show_n and_o idle_a sign_n but_o have_v always_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n adjoin_v unto_o they_o to_o show_v the_o end_n use_v &_o profit_n of_o they_o and_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n in_o they_o this_o appear_v in_o all_o place_n where_o god_n give_v sign_n to_o confirm_v and_o assure_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o promise_n when_o he_o give_v in_o mercy_n to_o noah_n and_o all_o his_o posterity_n the_o 11._o rainbow_n immediate_o after_o the_o flood_n as_o a_o sign_n of_o his_o covenant_n he_o add_v his_o word_n unto_o the_o sign_n my_o covenant_n will_v i_o establish_v with_o you_o that_o from_o henceforth_o all_o flesh_n shall_v not_o be_v root_v out_o by_o the_o water_n of_o the_o flood_n neither_o shall_v there_o be_v a_o flood_n to_o destroy_v the_o earth_n any_o more_o this_o be_v it_o the_o apostle_n 4_o mean_v 1._o cor_fw-la 11._o you_o show_v the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v where_o he_o teach_v that_o the_o lord_n supper_n can_v be_v true_o deliver_v and_o right_o administer_v unless_o there_o be_v a_o declaration_n &_o show_v forth_o of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o sacrament_n except_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n be_v join_v unto_o it_o by_o way_n of_o explication_n and_o exposition_n of_o the_o outward_a sign_n last_o those_o sacrament_n be_v prove_v hereby_o to_o be_v no_o 3._o sacrament_n which_o be_v foist_v and_o bring_v in_o without_o the_o warrant_n of_o the_o word_n for_o take_v away_o the_o word_n and_o what_o be_v the_o outward_a element_n but_o a_o bare_a sign_n what_o be_v the_o water_n in_o baptism_n but_o common_a water_n what_o be_v the_o bread_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o common_a breed_v what_o be_v the_o wine_n but_o common_a wine_n such_o as_o man_n use_v and_o all_o man_n may_v take_v at_o their_o ordinary_a table_n see_v therefore_o such_o sign_n &_o sacrament_n as_o have_v not_o god_n commandment_n for_o their_o institution_n nor_o promise_v of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n annex_v unto_o the_o use_n of_o they_o be_v void_a and_o nothing_o worth_a hereby_o the_o imagine_a &_o devise_a sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v condemn_v which_o deliver_v that_o it_o have_v not_o receive_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o impose_v that_o to_o be_v believe_v which_o it_o never_o learn_v in_o the_o word_n hereby_o the_o last_o anoyl_v or_o extreme_a unction_n be_v exclude_v want_v the_o word_n to_o warrant_v the_o continual_a practice_n of_o it_o also_o their_o confirmation_n have_v neither_o word_n to_o institut_n the_o practice_n nor_o element_n to_o assure_v any_o grace_n nor_o promise_v to_o approve_v any_o use_n true_a it_o be_v they_o have_v word_n to_o administer_v it_o but_o they_o be_v word_n of_o man_n not_o of_o god_n unwriten_a not_o write_v of_o tradition_n not_o of_o scripture_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o marriage_n though_o we_o confess_v and_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v a_o holy_a ordinance_n and_o 4_o honourable_a institution_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v it_o make_v no_o sacrament_n have_v no_o word_n of_o institution_n no_o promise_n of_o sanctification_n and_o salvation_n annex_v unto_o all_o the_o faithful_a user_n thereof_o neither_o be_v it_o a_o instrument_n whereby_o god_n apply_v christ_n and_o his_o save_a benefit_n to_o the_o comfort_n and_o consolation_n of_o his_o child_n wherefore_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n we_o affirm_v that_o neither_o the_o son_n of_o romulus_n at_o rome_n nor_o of_o remus_n at_o rheims_n shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o show_v and_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v and_o receive_v as_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n which_o have_v no_o warrant_n of_o the_o word_n to_o command_v they_o nor_o promise_v annex_v to_o assure_v the_o save_a grace_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n but_o such_o be_v their_o five_o pretend_a sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n penance_n order_n
matrimony_n and_o extreme_a unction_n want_v either_o the_o word_n or_o promise_n or_o both_o and_o therefore_o we_o can_v receive_v we_o can_v acknowledge_v we_o can_v believe_v they_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o second_o outward_a part_n namely_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n chap._n 6._o of_o the_o three_o outward_a part_n of_o a_o sacrament_n the_o three_o outward_a part_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v the_o sacrament_n element_n or_o outward_a sign_n for_o whersoever_o there_o be_v a_o sacrament_n there_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v a_o sign_n such_o as_o water_n be_v in_o baptism_n and_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n not_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n which_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o especial_a word_n and_o prayer_n therefore_o john_n the_o baptist_n baptize_v with_o water_n and_o christ_n when_o he_o institute_v his_o last_o supper_n take_v bread_n and_o break_v it_o and_o give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n likewise_o he_o take_v the_o cup_n wherein_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n as_o appear_v when_o he_o 25._o say_v i_o will_v drink_v no_o more_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n until_o that_o day_n that_o i_o drink_v it_o new_a in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n see_v then_o it_o be_v clear_a there_o must_v in_o every_o sacrament_n be_v a_o visible_a sign_n that_o may_v be_v see_v &_o handle_v let_v we_o see_v how_o 1._o we_o may_v profitable_o apply_v this_o to_o our_o instruction_n first_o see_v the_o sign_n and_o sacramental_a rite_n be_v outward_a part_n we_o must_v take_v heed_n we_o ascribe_v not_o too_o much_o to_o the_o outward_a sign_n and_o so_o commit_v idolatry_n idol_n to_o the_o creature_n for_o the_o water_n in_o baptism_n have_v not_o power_n in_o itself_o and_o force_n to_o wash_v away_o sin_n but_o by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n it_o be_v make_v a_o sign_n and_o seal_n of_o regeneration_n even_o as_o the_o water_n of_o jordan_n where_o john_n baptize_v be_v no_o better_a than_o the_o water_n of_o other_o place_n and_o country_n neither_o have_v any_o strengthe_n and_o virtue_n to_o cleanse_v the_o leper_n that_o wash_v in_o it_o yet_o by_o the_o bleise_v of_o god_n naaman_n the_o syrian_a 14._o wash_v himself_o 7._o time_n therein_o according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v cleanse_v and_o heal_v of_o his_o leprocie_n so_o the_o water_n use_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n be_v in_o nature_n and_o substance_n the_o same_o with_o ordinary_a and_o common_a water_n neither_o have_v it_o vig_z our_o and_o virtue_n to_o cleanse_v the_o soul_n yet_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o god_n it_o be_v appoint_v to_o seal_v up_o the_o asturance_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n not_o with_o stand_v this_o confidence_n in_o the_o outward_a sign_n which_o in_o itself_o be_v as_o nothing_o have_v since_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n rest_v and_o remain_v in_o his_o corrupt_a nature_n flatter_v himself_o and_o deceive_v his_o own_o soul_n this_o fond_a and_o false_a opinion_n be_v in_o adam_n immediate_o after_o his_o transgression_n he_o do_v attribute_v too_o much_o to_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n which_o have_v in_o itself_o no_o more_o life_n than_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o tree_n in_o the_o garden_n and_o therefore_o god_n will_v thrust_v he_o out_o of_o the_o garden_n 22._o lest_o he_o shall_v beguile_v himself_o with_o that_o conceit_n and_o imagination_n thus_o do_v the_o israelite_n trust_v too_o much_o in_o the_o ark_n a_o sign_n of_o god_n comfortable_a presence_n and_o protection_n attribute_v salvation_n thereunto_o sayeinge_v 3._o it_o may_v save_v we_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o enemy_n therefore_o god_n overthrow_v they_o and_o give_v they_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o philistines_n again_o we_o be_v teach_v hereby_o that_o the_o sacrament_n that_o 2._o have_v no_o sign_n no_o seal_n no_o element_n to_o signisie_n to_o strengthen_v and_o to_o seal_v up_o the_o promise_n of_o salvation_n for_o as_o we_o show_v before_o that_o every_o sacrament_n must_v have_v god_n word_n to_o warrant_v it_o so_o must_v it_o have_v a_o outward_a sign_n to_o approve_v the_o receive_n of_o it_o and_o to_o signify_v the_o spiritual_a grace_n offer_v by_o it_o herby_n we_o learn_v what_o to_o hold_v of_o transubstantiation_n a_o doctrine_n tech_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o very_a body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n namely_o that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a fable_n to_o mock_v fool_n withal_o for_o overthrow_v whatsoever_o overthrow_v the_o nature_n and_o use_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v but_o omit_v neither_o to_o be_v receive_v but_o reject_v but_o transubstantiation_n overthrow_v and_o overturn_v both_o the_o nature_n and_o use_n of_o a_o sacrament_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v admit_v and_o receive_v into_o the_o church_n for_o touch_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n it_o be_v confess_v 34._o that_o it_o consist_v of_o two_o part_n the_o one_o earthly_a and_o the_o other_o heavenly_a but_o if_o after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n than_o the_o sign_n be_v take_v away_o the_o element_n be_v overthrow_v the_o material_a part_n be_v abolish_v and_o consequent_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v overturn_v and_o touch_v the_o use_n of_o a_o sacrament_n there_o must_v be_v a_o analogy_n and_o propoition_n between_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o thing_n signify_v as_o in_o baptism_n the_o element_n of_o water_n wash_v and_o purge_v the_o body_n so_o the_o holyghost_n through_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n cleanse_v and_o sanctify_v the_o soul_n like_o wise_a in_o the_o lord_n supper_n as_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n receive_v strengthen_v and_o comfort_v the_o body_n so_o christ_n 33._o receive_v by_o faith_n nourish_v &_o feed_v the_o soul_n the_o very_a true_a principal_a use_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v to_o confirm_v our_o faith_n that_o as_o sure_o as_o those_o earthly_a creature_n take_v and_o aply_v feed_v our_o body_n to_o a_o bodily_a life_n so_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n receive_v and_o apply_v by_o say_v feed_v our_o soul_n to_o eternal_a life_n and_o do_v not_o all_o the_o faithful_a seel_v a_o swect_a comfort_n so_o often_o as_o they_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n by_o this_o similitude_n and_o agreement_n to_o consider_v and_o know_v assure_o that_o as_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n serve_v to_o nourish_v and_o do_v feed_v our_o body_n so_o christ_n do_v feed_v our_o soul_n but_o if_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v change_v and_o clean_o go_v that_o nothing_o remain_v but_o accident_n where_o be_v this_o comfort_n and_o consolation_n how_o can_v we_o be_v assure_v and_o strengthen_v that_o as_o our_o body_n be_v nourish_v with_o the_o material_a element_n so_o in_o like_a manner_n our_o soul_n by_o feed_v on_o christ_n wherefore_o while_o they_o take_v away_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n which_o shall_v nourish_v the_o body_n the_o nature_n and_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v destroy_v and_o we_o be_v spoil_v of_o the_o comfort_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o strengthen_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o we_o shall_v have_v by_o this_o notable_a comparison_n and_o resemblance_n of_o the_o part_n so_o then_o if_o we_o will_v receive_v comfort_n in_o come_v to_o this_o communion_n we_o must_v retain_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o sign_n as_o a_o staff_n to_o stay_v up_o our_o faith_n that_o it_o do_v no_o fail_v and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o three_o outward_a part_n to_o wit_n the_o sign_n chap._n 7._o of_o the_o outward_a part_n of_o a_o sacrament_n the_o last_o outward_a part_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v the_o sacrament_n receiver_n which_o be_v as_o needful_a as_o the_o outward_a sign_n we_o understand_v and_o take_v here_o a_o receiver_n in_o general_a for_o every_o one_o that_o come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n whether_o good_a or_o evil_n godly_a or_o ungodly_a faithful_a or_o unfaithful_a such_o a_o receiver_n be_v likewise_o a_o necessary_a part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o no_o sign_n have_v the_o substance_n and_o essence_n of_o a_o sacrament_n unless_o it_o be_v receive_v though_o there_o be_v a_o minister_n to_o administer_v it_o a_o word_n to_o warrant_v it_o a_o sign_n to_o represent_v it_o yet_o unlosse_o there_o be_v a_o fit_a person_n to_o receive_v it_o there_o can_v be_v no_o sacrament_n if_o the_o minister_n shall_v sprinkle_v water_n and_o allege_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n where_o there_o be_v no_o party_n to_o be_v baptize_v this_o be_v a_o profane_v not_o a_o solemnize_n of_o baptism_n or_o if_o he_o shall_v take_v bread_n and_o wine_n with_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n where_o none_o
of_o exposition_n say_v hegave_v thanks_o so_o that_o the_o blessing_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v give_v of_o thanks_o 16_o which_o also_o appear_v compare_v 11._o with_o joh._n 6_o 11._o and_o the_o apostle_n say_v 4_o every_o creature_n of_o god_n be_v good_a if_o it_o be_v receive_v with_o thank_v sgiving_n for_o it_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o prayer_n we_o see_v then_o that_o consecration_n be_v when_o a_o thing_n be_v separate_v from_o a_o common_a and_o civil_a use_n to_o a_o more_o special_a use_n which_o be_v do_v by_o 2_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n and_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o prayer_n whereby_o it_o have_v his_o full_a force_n power_n and_o virtue_n the_o knowledge_n of_o this_o point_n serve_v to_o clear_v our_o 1._o doctrine_n and_o to_o overthrow_v sundry_a error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n first_o it_o show_v that_o we_o hold_v &_o teach_v a_o consecration_n that_o be_v a_o sanctifieng_v of_o the_o water_n in_o baptism_n and_o of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n by_o the_o word_n by_o prayer_n and_o by_o thanksgiving_n the_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v change_v not_o in_o nature_n but_o in_o quality_n not_o in_o substance_n but_o in_o use_n not_o in_o essence_n but_o in_o the_o end_n not_o by_o force_n of_o certain_a word_n but_o by_o christ_n institution_n we_o acknowledge_v and_o confess_v a_o consecration_n not_o a_o conversion_n a_o sanctification_n of_o the_o sign_n not_o a_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o substance_n into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n he_o bless_a and_o praise_v his_o father_n as_o mediator_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n and_o he_o 16_o bless_v the_o creature_n that_o they_o may_v be_v effectual_a sign_n and_o serve_v for_o the_o confirmation_n and_o increase_n of_o our_o faith_n second_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o consecration_n be_v not_o a_o magical_a 2._o charm_n and_o incantation_n by_o force_n of_o certain_a word_n as_o though_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v murmur_v and_o speak_v over_o the_o bread_n and_o this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n whisper_v over_o the_o wine_n do_v full_o finish_v a_o consecration_n and_o make_v the_o element_n to_o be_v immediate_o change_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n without_o any_o other_o observe_v of_o the_o institution_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o form_n of_o christ_n give_v of_o thanks_o be_v not_o set_v down_o by_o any_o evangelist_n because_o our_o corrupution_n and_o superstition_n be_v so_o great_a that_o if_o we_o have_v the_o word_n we_o will_v ascribe_v power_n &_o force_v to_o the_o word_n syllable_n and_o letter_n and_o therefore_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o thanksgiving_n be_v pretermit_v this_o inclination_n of_o the_o hart_n be_v apparent_o see_v in_o the_o romish_a church_n who_o ascribe_v efficacy_n &_o operation_n to_o the_o pronounce_v of_o certain_a word_n which_o be_v a_o part_n of_o sorcery_n and_o a_o part_n of_o witch_n craft_n whereas_o we_o avouch_v that_o the_o whole_a action_n of_o take_v break_v pour_v out_o distribute_v eat_v drink_v praise_v &_o rehearse_v the_o institution_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o consecration_n that_o be_v the_o separation_n of_o these_o creature_n to_o this_o use_n three_o if_o after_o the_o sacramental_a action_n if_o after_o thanksgiving_n 3._o to_o god_n if_o after_o prayer_n that_o we_o may_v use_v the_o creature_n to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n there_o do_v follow_v consecration_n sanctification_n and_o change_v of_o the_o element_n to_o another_o use_n then_o the_o power_n effect_n and_o work_v of_o the_o sacrament_n depend_v not_o upon_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o minister_n &_o therefore_o the_o 11._o popish_a opinion_n be_v to_o be_v refuse_v and_o reprove_v that_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v no_o sacrament_n if_o the_o minister_n have_v not_o a_o 27._o intent_n and_o purpose_n in_o the_o ministration_n thereof_o at_o least_o to_o do_v that_o which_o the_o church_n do_v that_o be_v to_o consecrate_v the_o element_n and_o to_o make_v a_o sacrament_n if_o his_o mind_n be_v not_o on_o his_o matter_n &_o his_o hart_n on_o his_o business_n in_o hand_n they_o hold_v it_o can_v be_v no_o sacrament_n for_o otherwise_o say_v bellarmine_n if_o a_o priest_n shall_v read_v the_o gospel_n at_o the_o table_n of_o prelate_n and_o religious_a man_n and_o in_o read_v shall_v pronounce_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n than_o all_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n upon_o the_o the_o table_n shall_v be_v consecrate_v and_o change_v into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v not_o so_o because_o his_o intent_n be_v want_v again_o if_o a_o father_n shall_v lead_v his_o son_n to_o the_o bath_n and_o there_o dip_v he_o in_o the_o water_n and_o say_v i_o wash_v thou_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o though_o he_o think_v nothing_o of_o baptise_v he_o yet_o it_o shall_v be_v baptism_n if_o a_o intent_n of_o baptise_v be_v not_o require_v but_o i_o will_v glad_o have_v he_o answer_v this_o question_n what_o if_o a_o father_n shall_v intend_v baptism_n by_o dip_v his_o child_n in_o the_o bath_n whether_o that_o be_v baptism_n or_o not_o or_o suppose_v the_o priest_n we_o speak_v off_o read_v at_o the_o prelate_n table_n shall_v have_v a_o mind_n and_o meaning_n to_o consecrate_v all_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n upon_o the_o table_n must_v 〈◊〉_d of_o necessity_n be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o real_a change_n of_o all_o or_o admit_v the_o former_a priest_n be_v in_o the_o say_a prelate_n wine_n seller_n suppose_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o to_o stand_v at_o the_o altar_n shall_v pronounce_v there_o word_n of_o consecration_n with_o a_o purpose_n and_o intent_n to_o make_v a_o sacrament_n shall_v all_o the_o wine_n in_o that_o 〈◊〉_d be_v turn_v into_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n or_o if_o he_o be_v in_o a_o baker_n shop_n shall_v there_o solemn_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n with_o the_o foresay_a resolution_n shall_v all_o that_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n let_v they_o speak_v plain_o let_v they_o tell_v we_o direct_o what_o they_o hold_v i_o think_v they_o will_v not_o say_v so_o i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v not_o so_o for_o other_o thing_n be_v want_v that_o be_v needful_a in_o this_o matter_n we_o have_v show_v that_o a_o sacrament_n be_v not_o make_v by_o bare_a pronounce_v of_o certain_a word_n ascribe_v force_n to_o they_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o enchanter_n but_o the_o whole_a institution_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v observe_v minister_n there_o must_v be_v distribute_v and_o receive_v there_o must_v be_v prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n and_o from_o the_o use_n of_o these_o follow_v consecration_n all_o which_o be_v want_v in_o the_o former_a example_n &_o supposition_n there_o be_v no_o take_v no_o break_n no_o distribute_v no_o pour_v out_o no_o receive_n no_o pray_n no_o thanksgiving_n we_o see_v touch_v the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o what_o intent_n and_o under_o what_o pretence_n soever_o 3._o it_o be_v preach_v if_o the_o minister_n teach_v christ_n crucify_v howsoever_o he_o be_v affect_v it_o may_v have_v his_o effect_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o work_n say_v in_o 〈◊〉_d hearer_n so_o be_v it_o in_o the_o sacrament_n they_o have_v their_o efficacy_n and_o operation_n howsoever_o the_o hart_n of_o the_o minister_n be_v dispose_v and_o as_o isaac_n intend_v not_o to_o bless_v jacob_n but_o esau_n 33._o yet_o it_o hinder_v not_o the_o purpose_n and_o determination_n of_o god_n so_o the_o corrupt_a intent_n the_o wander_a imagination_n and_o rove_a conceit_n of_o the_o minister_n can_v hinder_v the_o blessing_n of_o god_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v his_o own_o ordinace_n for_o the_o force_n of_o the_o sacrament_n depend_v no_o more_o upon_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o giver_n than_o it_o do_v upon_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o receiver_n again_o if_o the_o right_a receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n depend_v upon_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o minister_n what_o assurance_n can_v any_o man_n have_v that_o he_o have_v ever_o receive_v or_o shall_v ever_o receive_v a_o sacrament_n what_o persuasion_n can_v we_o have_v in_o our_o heart_n that_o we_o ever_o be_v baptize_v what_o knowledge_n that_o we_o be_v ever_o partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o this_o leave_v we_o uncertain_a and_o unsettle_a without_o comfort_n without_o fruit_n without_o benefit_n by_o come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o set_v the_o poor_a distress_a conscience_n of_o man_n upon_o the_o rack_n alas_o we_o can_v know_v 11._o the_o hart_n and_o understand_v the_o intentes_fw-la thereof_o for_o what_o man_n
have_v give_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o love_v we_o gracious_o and_o free'y_v he_o love_v we_o when_o we_o be_v enemic_n nuto_o he_o and_o spare_v not_o his_o own_o son_n but_o give_v he_o to_o death_n for_o we_o all_o do_v not_o these_o thing_n deserve_v love_n again_o be_v we_o not_o bind_v to_o show_v duty_n for_o these_o mercy_n and_o love_n to_o our_o brethren_n for_o this_o love_n of_o our_o god_n and_o yet_o many_o regard_n neither_o these_o blessing_n of_o god_n neither_o to_o walk_v in_o uprightness_n of_o hart_n before_o he_o chap._n 15._o of_o the_o three_o use_n of_o a_o sacrament_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o second_o use_n the_o three_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n profession_n be_v to_o be_v badge_n and_o mark_n of_o our_o christian_a profession_n that_o thereby_o one_o of_o we_o shall_v acknowledge_v a_o other_o to_o be_v of_o one_o household_n and_o of_o one_o family_n of_o one_o society_n and_o as_o it_o be_v bird_n of_o one_o feather_n for_o hereby_o we_o do_v manifest_v who_o we_o be_v who_o weserue_v to_o what_o house_n we_o belong_v and_o to_o what_o people_n and_o church_n we_o be_v thereby_o gather_v into_o one_o religion_n and_o distinguish_v from_o other_o sect_n 11._o we_o be_v gather_v into_o one_o church_n and_o knit_v together_o in_o one_o as_o eph._n 2._o remember_v that_o you_o be_v in_o time_n past_o gentile_n in_o the_o flesh_n 14._o and_o call_v uncircumcision_n of_o they_o which_o be_v call_v circumcision_n in_o the_o flesh_n make_v with_o hand_n you_o be_v at_o that_o time_n without_o christ_n without_o god_n without_o hope_n but_o now_o in_o christ_n jesus_n you_o which_o once_o be_v far_o off_o be_v make_v near_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n the_o jew_n by_o circumcision_n be_v distinguish_v from_o other_o people_n 36._o and_o the_o name_n of_o uncircumcifed_a be_v reproachful_a they_o be_v account_v unclean_a &_o unholy_a person_n for_o the_o uncircum_fw-la cise_v male_n be_v to_o be_v 14._o cut_v off_o from_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n so_o by_o baptism_n we_o be_v separate_v from_o all_o other_o religion_n and_o be_v consecrate_v only_o to_o christian_n religion_n and_o such_o as_o continue_v unbapti_fw-la sed_fw-la with_o contempt_n of_o that_o sacrament_n we_o take_v they_o not_o for_o our_o brethren_n nor_o for_o the_o people_n of_o god_n nor_o for_o member_n of_o his_o church_n because_o they_o refuse_v to_o take_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n as_o the_o badge_n and_o cognizance_n by_o which_o they_o shall_v be_v know_v such_o as_o be_v atheist_n infidel_n sarazen_n turk_n persian_n moor_n jew_n and_o other_o nation_n that_o want_v this_o mark_n to_o be_v discern_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o family_n of_o christ_n christ_n jesus_n send_v out_o his_o apostle_n bid_v they_o teach_v and_o baptize_v the_o gentile_n 42._o to_o who_o he_o direct_v they_o therefore_o where_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n be_v there_o be_v a_o church_n and_o congregation_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v and_o hereunto_o come_v that_o say_n when_o the_o apostle_n have_v exhort_v the_o people_n to_o amend_v their_o life_n and_o to_o save_v themselves_o from_o that_o froward_a generation_n then_o they_o that_o glad_o receive_v the_o word_n be_v baptize_v and_o they_o continue_v in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o fellowship_n and_o break_v of_o bread_n and_o prayer_n and_o the_o same_o day_n there_o be_v add_v to_o the_o church_n three_o thou_o sand_n soul_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o by_o the_o sacrament_n as_o by_o certain_a band_n and_o chain_n god_n knit_v and_o bind_v his_o people_n to_o himself_o and_o keep_v they_o in_o his_o covenant_n lest_o they_o shall_v fall_v away_o to_o infidelity_n and_o the_o people_n be_v warn_v that_o by_o these_o outward_a sign_n they_o differ_v from_o the_o barbarous_a and_o unbelieve_a gentile_n and_o consequent_o shall_v endeavour_v and_o provide_v that_o they_o likewise_o differ_v from_o they_o in_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v signify_v by_o those_o sign_n this_o osfer_v to_o our_o consideration_n very_o good_a use_n first_o 1._o hereby_o we_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o our_o dignity_n and_o excellency_n such_o be_v our_o privilege_n and_o prerogative_n that_o we_o do_v bear_v the_o badge_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n how_o do_v man_n in_o this_o world_n desire_v to_o wear_v the_o cloth_n and_o shroud_v themselves_o under_o the_o badge_n of_o great_a person_n of_o countenance_n to_o protect_v they_o how_o much_o great_a preferment_n be_v it_o to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v gather_v under_o his_o wing_n and_o to_o be_v his_o disciple_n who_o service_n be_v perfect_a 36._o freedom_n and_o protection_n from_o all_o evil_n and_o who_o badge_n be_v instrument_n of_o his_o save_a grace_n if_o this_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o faithful_a let_v we_o seek_v to_o maintain_v our_o dignity_n and_o freedom_n 13_o according_a as_o john_n teach_v behold_v what_o love_n the_o father_n have_v give_v to_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o this_o cause_n the_o world_n know_v you_o not_o because_o it_o know_v not_o he_o and_o again_o in_o his_o gospel_n as_o many_o as_o receive_v christ_n to_o they_o he_o give_v prerogative_n to_o be_v son_n of_o god_n even_o to_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n which_o be_v bear_v not_o of_o blood_n nor_o of_o the_o flesh_n nor_o of_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n whereas_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o estate_n and_o condition_n of_o ungodly_a man_n be_v base_a vile_a miserable_a and_o contemptible_a they_o live_v to_o themselves_o and_o to_o sin_n they_o die_v to_o judgement_n and_o condemnation_n what_o can_v be_v more_o fearful_a what_o can_v be_v more_o wretched_a second_o if_o we_o wear_v the_o cloth_n and_o badge_n of_o christ_n than_o 2._o we_o must_v be_v bold_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o hold_v out_o our_o profession_n notwithstanding_o danger_n and_o fear_n of_o death_n for_o we_o serve_v one_o that_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v we_o out_o we_o see_v how_o man_n belong_v to_o those_o that_o be_v of_o high_a place_n be_v many_o time_n embolden_v there_o by_o in_o lewd_a practice_n how_o much_o more_o ought_v we_o that_o have_v learned_a christ_n to_o be_v incorage_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o not_o to_o shrink_v back_o for_o fear_n of_o offence_n this_o be_v the_o commendation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o 13_o pergamus_n i_o know_v thy_o work_n and_o where_o thou_o dwell_v even_o where_o satan_n throne_n be_v and_o thou_o keep_v my_o name_n and_o have_v not_o deny_v my_o faith_n even_o in_o those_o day_n when_o antipas_n my_o faithful_a martyr_n be_v slay_v among_o you_o where_o satan_n dwell_v so_o christ_n our_o saviour_n 33._o teach_v his_o disciple_n whosoever_o shall_v confess_v i_o before_o man_n he_o 〈◊〉_d i_o confess_v also_o before_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n but_o who_o soever_o shall_v deny_v i_o before_o man_n he_o will_v i_o also_o deny_v before_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n wherefore_o this_o condemn_v those_o that_o say_v i_o will_v keep_v my_o conscience_n to_o myself_o none_o shall_v know_v my_o religion_n but_o god_n and_o myself_o i_o will_v not_o be_v to_o forward_o for_o fear_v of_o after_o reckon_n nor_o any_o way_n countenance_n such_o as_o be_v forward_o these_o man_n while_o they_o suppose_v to_o keep_v their_o religion_n to_o themselves_o do_v indeed_o proclaim_v open_o that_o they_o be_v of_o no_o religion_n for_o if_o they_o do_v true_o believe_v in_o their_o heart_n they_o will_v likewise_o confess_v with_o their_o tongue_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o 10._o apostle_n if_o thou_o shall_v confess_v with_o thy_o mouth_n the_o lord_n jesus_n &_o shall_v believe_v in_o thy_o hart_n that_o god_n he_o raise_v from_o the_o dead_a thou_o shall_v be_v save_v for_o with_o the_o hart_n man_n believe_v unto_o righteousness_n and_o with_o the_o mouth_n man_n confess_v unto_o salvation_n and_o 18._o the_o apostle_n james_n teach_v we_o to_o try_v faith_n by_o work_n as_o gold_n by_o the_o touchstone_n chap_n 2._o show_v i_o thy_o faith_n by_o thy_o work_n and_o i_o will_v snow_v thou_o my_o faith_n by_o my_o work_n so_o then_o let_v we_o not_o be_v ashamed_a of_o the_o 16._o gospel_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n to_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v and_o not_o shrink_v for_o trouble_v as_o deceitful_a cloth_n in_o the_o wet_n lest_o our_o master_n be_v ashamed_a of_o we_o before_o his_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a angel_n th'rd_o if_o the_o sacrament_n be_v as_o badge_n to_o show_v forth_o our_o profession_n than_o it_o
condemn_v those_o that_o speak_v evil_a 3._o of_o man_n as_o too_o precise_a too_o nice_a too_o pure_a for_o their_o profession_n because_o they_o run_v not_o into_o the_o same_o excess_n of_o riot_n with_o other_o these_o be_v not_o too_o precise_a but_o such_o as_o scoff_n at_o all_o profession_n be_v too_o profane_a it_o be_v good_a to_o be_v earnest_a in_o the_o matter_n of_o god_n provide_v that_o our_o zeal_n be_v temper_v with_o discretion_n and_o all_o newtet_n be_v odious_a to_o god_n 16._o as_o it_o be_v say_v to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o laodicean_n i_o know_v thy_o work_n that_o thou_o be_v neither_o cold_a nor_o hot_a i_o will_v thou_o were_v cold_a or_o hot_a therefore_o because_o thou_o be_v luke_o warm_a and_o neither_o cold_a nor_o hot_a it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o i_o shall_v spew_v thou_o out_o of_o my_o mouth_n wherefore_o let_v we_o not_o be_v discourage_v in_o welldoing_a but_o walk_v through_o good_a report_n and_o evil_a report_n let_v we_o remember_v that_o as_o christ_n be_v our_o lord_n and_o master_n so_o our_o profession_n and_o the_o sacrament_n be_v our_o badge_n last_o we_o see_v what_o our_o estate_n and_o condition_n be_v that_o we_o 4._o be_v not_o our_o own_o but_o be_v subject_a to_o christ_n to_o serve_v he_o for_o we_o do_v bear_v his_o badge_n then_o he_o be_v our_o master_n if_o he_o be_v our_o master_n 6._o where_o be_v the_o fear_n and_o reverence_v due_a unto_o he_o be_v it_o not_o meet_v we_o shall_v show_v ourselves_o thankful_a for_o so_o great_a mercy_n and_o gift_n be_v it_o not_o intolerable_a unthankefulnes_n and_o unsufferable_a pride_n for_o any_o man_n to_o wear_v the_o cognizance_n of_o another_o and_o yet_o to_o scorn_v his_o service_n and_o deny_v he_o duty_n may_v not_o one_o worthy_o check_v and_o control_v he_o as_o christ_n do_v the_o 〈◊〉_d who_o unwilling_o pay_v such_o tax_n and_o tribute_n as_o be_v lay_v upon_o they_o he_o call_v for_o a_o penny_n 21._o &_o say_v unto_o they_o who_o image_n and_o superscription_n be_v this_o they_o say_v unto_o he_o caesar_n he_o ansuer_v give_v therefore_o to_o caesar_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n and_o give_v to_o god_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v god_n so_o likewise_o may_v one_o say_v fit_o who_o badge_n wear_v thou_o who_o arm_n bear_v thou_o on_o thysleeve_v do_v not_o this_o put_v thou_o in_o mind_n of_o thy_o state_n and_o condition_n and_o of_o the_o service_n and_o honour_n thou_o owe_v thy_o master_n in_o like_a manner_n may_v it_o be_v say_v to_o we_o who_o badge_n bear_v thou_o be_v it_o not_o christ_n we_o be_v not_o therefore_o our_o own_o man_n 20._o as_o the_o apostle_n reason_v and_o conclude_v 1._o cor._n 6._o know_v you_o not_o that_o your_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holyghost_n which_o be_v in_o you_o who_o you_o have_v of_o god_n and_o you_o be_v not_o your_o own_o for_o you_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o price_n therefore_o glorify_v god_n in_o your_o body_n &_o in_o your_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v god_n so_o many_o therefore_o as_o come_v without_o knowledge_n and_o true_a repentance_n break_v their_o faith_n give_v to_o christ_n and_o betray_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v wherefore_o to_o the_o right_a use_n and_o partake_n of_o the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v require_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o three_o person_n especial_o of_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n perfect_a god_n and_o perfect_a man_n and_o of_o his_o three_o office_n to_o save_v his_o people_n to_o be_v their_o priest_n perfect_o by_o his_o sacrifice_n to_o reconcile_v and_o justify_v they_o to_o be_v their_o king_n by_o the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n to_o kill_v sin_n in_o they_o &_o to_o sanctify_v they_o to_o be_v their_o teacher_n to_o instruct_v they_o in_o the_o will_n of_o his_o heavenly_a father_n after_o these_o be_v require_v true_a faith_n and_o earnest_a repentance_n otherwise_o we_o can_v receive_v christ._n christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n put_v food_n into_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o dead_a man_n it_o can_v nourish_v he_o so_o if_o one_o that_o be_v unworthy_a and_o unfit_a lie_v dead_a &_o rot_v in_o his_o sin_n do_v come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n certain_o they_o do_v not_o give_v he_o life_n and_o worthiness_n 29._o but_o such_o a_o one_o do_v lade_v himself_o with_o a_o great_a burden_n of_o sin_n and_o punishment_n whosoever_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n unworthy_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o eat_v and_o drink_v his_o 〈◊〉_d judgement_n because_o he_o discern_v not_o the_o lord_n body_n chap_n 16._o of_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n hitherto_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o chief_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n now_o we_o be_v come_v to_o speak_v sacrament_n of_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n according_a as_o we_o take_v the_o name_n and_o have_v declare_v the_o nature_n of_o they_o let_v we_o see_v then_o how_o many_o such_o visible_a sign_n and_o seal_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v iustitute_v of_o god_n to_o set_v forth_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o continual_a use_n of_o the_o church_n many_o live_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n hear_v the_o word_n come_v to_o public_a prayer_n take_v themselves_o to_o be_v goodly_a christian_n offer_v themselves_o to_o the_o lord_n table_n and_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o sacrament_n who_o yet_o be_v ignorant_a how_o many_o sacrament_n there_o be_v &_o what_o they_o be_v none_o almost_o so_o simple_a but_o can_v number_v his_o sheep_n and_o cattle_n he_o know_v their_o mark_n he_o know_v their_o difference_n but_o ask_v he_o how_o many_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n how_o many_o article_n of_o faith_n how_o many_o petition_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n or_o how_o many_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n he_o can_v answer_v nothing_o such_o have_v their_o wit_n whole_o exercise_v on_o the_o world_n and_o on_o worldly_a thing_n which_o justle_n out_o religion_n &_o the_o knowledge_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n if_o we_o have_v ear_n to_o hear_v let_v we_o hear_v what_o be_v the_o faith_n os_fw-la the_o church_n in_o this_o point_n ground_v upon_o the_o infallible_a rule_n and_o rock_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n ordain_v by_o christ_n to_o assure_v our_o communion_n with_o he_o be_v only_o two_o sacrament_n baptism_n whereby_o we_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n in_o steed_n of_o circumcision_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n whereby_o we_o be_v nourish_v maintain_v and_o retain_v therein_o instead_o of_o the_o passeover_n for_o albeit_o the_o covenant_n be_v but_o one_o yet_o the_o seal_n there_o of_o be_v two_o to_o assure_v we_o that_o by_o union_n with_o christ_n we_o be_v regenerate_v and_o shall_v be_v nourish_v to_o eternal_a life_n he_o have_v deliver_v we_o a_o few_o sacrament_n instead_o of_o many_o he_o can_v have_v institute_v more_o if_o he_o have_v think_v it_o good_a for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o church_n these_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o two_o eye_n whereby_o we_o see_v and_o behold_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n these_o be_v as_o the_o two_o hand_n whereby_o we_o after_o a_o sort_n do_v handle_v christ_n crucify_v and_o lie_v hold_v on_o the_o grace_n of_o salvation_n christ_n have_v appoint_v no_o mo_z sacrament_n he_o have_v lay_v on_o we_o a_o easy_a yoke_n and_o a_o light_a burden_n that_o these_o two_o be_v the_o only_a sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n may_v appear_v by_o these_o few_o reason_n sament_n follow_v first_o christ_n teach_v no_o more_o to_o his_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n deliver_v no_o mo_z to_o the_o church_n the_o church_n embrace_v no_o more_o for_o many_o year_n when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n live_v on_o the_o earth_n 3._o he_o institute_v baptism_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o john_n baptist_n who_o as_o he_o be_v send_v to_o prepare_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n so_o he_o preach_v the_o baptism_n of_o repentance_n afterwards_o the_o lord_n jesus_n establish_v it_o with_o his_o own_o mouth_n in_o the_o commission_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n he_o appoint_v and_o himself_o first_o administer_v his_o last_o supper_n in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n until_o his_o 2._o come_v again_o with_o power_n and_o great_a glory_n these_o two_o true_a sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v institute_v and_o warrant_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o christ_n himself_o and_o none_o other_o beside_o these_o these_o we_o receive_v because_o christ_n ordain_v they_o other_o we_o receive_v not_o because_o he_o ordain_v they_o not_o second_o the_o apostle_n paul_n admonish_v the_o
assure_v payment_n yea_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n in_o he_o be_v yea_o and_o be_v in_o he_o amen_o unto_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n but_o see_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n have_v abound_v in_o grant_v unto_o we_o two_o sacrament_n that_o where_o doubt_v abound_v there_o faith_n may_v abound_v much_o more_o our_o sin_n be_v the_o great_a if_o now_o we_o waver_v like_o 6._o a_o wave_n of_o the_o sea_n toss_v of_o the_o wind_n and_o carry_v away_o one_o tree_n of_o life_n serve_v adam_n to_o assure_v he_o life_n one_o rainbow_n suffice_v noah_n one_o return_n of_o the_o fun_n back_o ward_n be_v enough_o to_o hezekiah_n and_o they_o believe_v if_o then_o we_o seek_v a_o sign_n behold_v we_o have_v two_o give_v unto_o we_o that_o have_v two_o unchangeable_a sacrament_n as_o it_o be_v two_o witness_n of_o his_o word_n we_o may_v have_v strong_a consolation_n the_o unbelieve_a jew_n say_v to_o christ_n 1._o show_v we_o a_o sign_n and_o we_o will_v believe_v thou_o behold_v the_o lord_n show_v we_o two_o visible_a sign_n of_o his_o spiritual_a and_o invisible_a grace_n and_o shall_v not_o we_o believe_v be_v steadfast_a in_o faith_n we_o desire_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o assurance_n thereof_o by_o these_o two_o the_o lord_n promise_v covenant_v and_o indent_v to_o give_v the_o same_o unto_o we_o set_v the_o seal_n to_o his_o own_o writing_n last_o this_o division_n and_o number_v up_o of_o the_o sacrament_n 4._o serve_v to_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v not_o seven_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o do_v condemn_v the_o five_o suppose_a and_o false_o name_v sacrament_n 13._o maintain_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o wit_n confirmation_n penance_n matrimony_n order_n and_o extreme_a unction_n baptism_n we_o embrace_v the_o lord_n supper_n we_o acknowledge_v of_o these_o two_o we_o move_v no_o question_n we_o make_v no_o controversy_n the_o other_o five_o whole_a father_n be_v unknown_a we_o refuse_v as_o bastard_n and_o can_v admit_v they_o into_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n the_o reason_n whereof_o we_o will_v render_v in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v chap._n 17._o that_o confirmation_n be_v not_o a_o sacrament_n the_o apostle_n as_o the_o maister-builder_n of_o the_o church_n plant_v the_o gospel_n where_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v hear_v now_o because_o many_o seducer_n arise_v that_o trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o many_o believer_n begin_v to_o waver_v the_o apostle_n agree_v together_o to_o go_v again_o to_o the_o church_n where_o they_o have_v lay_v 12._o a_o golden_a foundation_n howsoever_o other_o have_v build_v hay_n and_o stubble_n thereon_o to_o see_v how_o they_o 36._o increase_v or_o decrease_v as_o act._n 11._o and_o they_o confirm_v their_o heart_n and_o establish_v they_o in_o the_o faith_n which_o they_o have_v teach_v and_o chap_n 15._o paul_n say_v unto_o barnabas_n let_v we_o return_v and_o visit_v our_o brethren_n in_o every_o city_n where_o we_o have_v preach_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o see_v how_o they_o do_v and_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o when_o the_o gospel_n be_v reveil_v the_o apostle_n by_o lay_v on_o hand_n give_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holyghost_n to_o the_o believer_n in_o christ._n this_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o find_v this_o we_o confess_v this_o we_o approve_v and_o allow_v but_o of_o any_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n we_o read_v not_o and_o therefore_o allow_v not_o again_o it_o be_v a_o laudable_a custom_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o christian_n parent_n to_o bring_v their_o child_n to_o the_o bishop_n who_o examine_v they_o in_o the_o principle_n and_o fundamental_a point_n of_o religion_n 1._o he_o ask_v they_o a_o reason_n of_o their_o faith_n he_o instruct_v they_o far_o in_o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n and_o that_o this_o action_n may_v have_v the_o more_o reverence_n and_o dignity_n they_o lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o they_o and_o pray_v unto_o god_n for_o they_o that_o he_o will_v increase_v and_o continue_v the_o good_a thing_n that_o he_o have_v begin_v in_o they_o this_o sacrament_n imposition_n of_o hand_n with_o prayer_n to_o be_v strengthen_v in_o the_o holyghost_n and_o to_o have_v increase_n of_o grace_n corrupt_v with_o annointing_n deprave_a with_o cross_n and_o defile_v with_o sundry_a superstition_n be_v no_o sacrament_n first_o every_o sacrament_n shall_v have_v warrant_n and_o appointment_n from_o christ_n but_o this_o have_v none_o second_o it_o have_v no_o word_n of_o institution_n in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o commandment_n to_o continue_v the_o use_n of_o it_o until_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o no_o sacrament_n for_o the_o word_n must_v be_v add_v to_o the_o element_n and_o so_o it_o be_v make_v a_o sacrament_n true_a it_o be_v they_o use_v a_o forge_a and_o counterfeit_a form_n in_o their_o confirmation_n i_o sign_n thou_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o holy_a cross_n and_o i_o confirm_v thou_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holi-ghost_n these_o indeed_o be_v word_n but_o no_o word_n of_o god_n they_o show_v a_o intolerable_a presumption_n and_o not_o to_o be_v excuse_v but_o indeed_o a_o counterfeit_a sacrament_n and_o there_o be_v a_o good_a agreement_n when_o both_o writing_n and_o seal_n be_v suitable_a that_o be_v both_o forge_v three_o it_o want_v a_o outward_a sign_n institute_v by_o christ._n we_o read_v oftentimes_o that_o the_o apostle_n use_v lay_v on_o of_o hand_n but_o we_o read_v of_o no_o oil_n or_o chrism_n beside_o we_o know_v they_o give_v thereby_o the_o miraculous_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o now_o be_v cease_v as_o act._n 8._o where_o we_o see_v when_o samaria_n be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n by_o preach_v of_o philip_n and_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o apostle_n send_v thither_o peter_n &_o john_n who_o pray_v for_o they_o 17._o that_o they_o may_v receiu_n the_o holyghost_n for_o as_o yet_o he_o be_v fall_v down_o on_o none_o of_o they_o then_o lay_v they_o their_o hand_n on_o they_o and_o they_o receive_v the_o holyghost_n this_o confirmation_n thus_o use_v have_v then_o a_o profitable_a use_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o as_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n command_v by_o 89_o god_n and_o set_v up_o by_o moses_n for_o good_a purpose_n be_v afterward_o abuse_v and_o 4_o incense_v offer_v unto_o it_o and_o last_o be_v by_o that_o good_a king_n hezekiah_n destroy_v and_o demolish_a so_o popish_a confirmation_n heath_n many_o intolerable_a abuse_n mingle_v with_o it_o it_o be_v minister_v in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n that_o none_o understand_v what_o be_v speak_v and_o mean_v they_o call_v the_o oil_n the_o oil_n of_o salvation_n they_o acount_v he_o no_o perfect_a christian_n that_o be_v not_o anoint_v by_o the_o bishop_n they_o prefer_v it_o before_o baptism_n because_o 327._o any_o of_o their_o piiest_n may_v baptize_v nay_o private_a man_n nay_o woman_n in_o their_o suppose_a time_n of_o necessity_n but_o confirmation_n may_v be_v give_v among_o they_o only_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o last_o they_o blow_v and_o hallow_z their_o oil_n that_o it_o may_v be_v make_v a_o spiritual_a ointment_n to_o purify_v soul_n and_o body_n these_o error_n be_v so_o gross_a that_o of_o every_o one_o they_o may_v be_v see_v they_o be_v so_o palpable_a that_o they_o may_v be_v feel_v wherefore_o see_v their_o confirmation_n be_v wrought_v by_o anoint_v see_v it_o have_v no_o word_n of_o god_n but_o a_o word_n of_o their_o own_o see_v they_o have_v no_o commandment_n for_o it_o nor_o promise_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o holyghost_n and_o last_o of_o all_o see_v it_o have_v many_o abuse_n join_v with_o it_o we_o have_v very_o just_a cause_n to_o thrust_v it_o out_o of_o this_o place_n and_o rank_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o throw_v it_o down_o from_o that_o high_a seat_n which_o 〈◊〉_d have_v long_o usurp_v chap._n 18._o that_o popish_a penance_n be_v no_o sacrament_n the_o doctrine_n of_o repentance_n and_o turn_n from_o all_o our_o sin_n to_o god_n to_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n of_o amendment_n of_o life_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o sacrament_n 6._o and_o commend_v unto_o all_o joel._n 2._o turn_v you_o unto_o i_o withal_o your_o heart_n and_o rend_v your_o heart_n not_o your_o garment_n there_o be_v none_o that_o live_v and_o sin_v not_o we_o be_v corrupt_a and_o become_v abominable_a the_o imagination_n of_o our_o hart_n be_v only_o evil_a and_o that_o continual_o in_o we_o that_o be_v in_o our_o flesh_n or_o unregenerate_a part_n there_o dwell_v no_o good_a thing_n we_o be_v conceive_v and_o bear_v in_o sin_n and_o therefore_o whosoever_o say_v he_o be_v
without_o sin_n deceive_v himself_o and_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o he_o this_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n that_o have_v take_v hold_n on_o all_o mankind_n for_o there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v good_a no_o not_o one_o must_v be_v mortify_v and_o the_o new_a man_n which_o be_v spiritual_a &_o regenerate_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n must_v be_v quicken_v repentance_n therefore_o consist_v in_o a_o 11_o inward_a sorrow_n for_o our_o sin_n in_o a_o hatred_n of_o they_o in_o suppress_v the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n in_o a_o purpose_n to_o obey_v god_n in_o a_o care_n to_o sorsake_v our_o sin_n in_o confess_v the_o greatness_n of_o they_o in_o condemn_v our_o ourselves_o for_o they_o in_o acknowledge_v the_o desert_n of_o they_o in_o a_o holy_a indignation_n &_o anger_n against_o ourselves_o that_o we_o have_v be_v so_o careless_a in_o look_v to_o our_o own_o way_n in_o fear_v lest_o we_o run_v into_o the_o same_o sin_n again_o in_o desire_v ever_o hereafter_o to_o please_v god_n and_o to_o walk_v more_o careful_o before_o he_o in_o zeal_n touch_v the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o in_o take_v revenge_n sometime_o and_o punishment_n upon_o our_o self_n for_o former_a offence_n for_o we_o confess_v plain_o and_o deny_v not_o but_o some_o outward_a penalty_n and_o chastisement_n of_o the_o body_n may_v be_v use_v &_o do_v please_v god_n not_o of_o themselves_o but_o because_o they_o be_v profitable_a mean_n and_o good_a help_n to_o further_o and_o forward_o true_a repentance_n as_o for_o example_n he_o that_o have_v offend_v grievous_o in_o surfeit_v &_o drunkenness_n and_o have_v great_a heaviness_n of_o hart_n &_o sorrow_n of_o mind_n that_o he_o have_v sin_v against_o so_o gracious_a a_o god_n and_o merciful_a father_n may_v prescribe_v &_o appoint_v to_o himself_o without_o appearance_n of_o superstition_n or_o error_n of_o satisfaction_n or_o opinion_n of_o 〈◊〉_d some_o fast_v or_o abstinence_n for_o a_o certain_a time_n that_o he_o may_v be_v better_o fit_v to_o god_n service_n and_o further_o strengthen_v against_o those_o sin_n into_o which_o he_o be_v fall_v this_o doctrine_n we_o receive_v as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n as_o appear_v 2_o cor._n 7._o where_o paul_n set_v down_o the_o effect_n or_o fruit_n of_o true_a repentance_n now_o the_o question_n sacrament_n arise_v between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o we_o whether_o this_o repentance_n which_o be_v a_o die_a to_o sin_n and_o a_o walk_n in_o newness_n of_o life_n and_o whether_o reconciliation_n to_o the_o church_n and_o absolution_n from_o sin_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n instituted_a by_o christ_n to_o assure_v his_o save_a grace_n to_o we_o we_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o first_o it_o be_v in_o time_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o man_n fall_n and_o transgression_n it_o be_v continual_o preach_v and_o publish_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o therefore_o before_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o can_v be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n second_o it_o want_v a_o outward_a sign_n such_o as_o water_v in_o baptism_n such_o as_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n now_o every_o sacrament_n must_v have_v a_o outward_a element_n and_o sign_n to_o represent_v the_o spiritual_a grace_n therefore_o penance_n can_v be_v no_o sacrament_n three_o it_o have_v no_o word_n to_o command_v it_o no_o particular_a promise_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o chiese_n stay_v and_o staff_n of_o a_o sacrament_n bellarmine_n affirm_v that_o 10._o christ_n institute_v the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n when_o he_o breathe_v upon_o his_o apostle_n after_o his_o resurrection_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o 22._o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v and_o who_o sin_n you_o retain_v they_o be_v retain_v and_o he_o say_v the_o word_n of_o absolution_n be_v the_o sign_n and_o that_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v signify_v for_o answer_v to_o this_o assertion_n i_o will_v glad_o ask_v this_o question_n whether_o the_o apostle_n have_v this_o ministerial_a power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n to_o repentant_a sinnet_n when_o they_o baptize_v to_o remission_n of_o sin_n if_o this_o power_n be_v here_o first_o institute_v and_o give_v unto_o they_o do_v they_o not_o by_o tie_v the_o authority_n of_o remit_v fin_n to_o this_o time_n make_v their_o baptism_n of_o none_o effect_v beside_o we_o have_v show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o have_v a_o sound_n of_o word_n that_o may_v be_v hear_v to_o make_v a_o outward_a sign_n there_o must_v be_v a_o visible_a sign_n that_o may_v be_v see_v to_o warrant_v a_o sacrament_n now_o to_o make_v a_o sacrament_n without_o such_o a_o sign_n be_v to_o make_v a_o sacrament_n without_o a_o sacrament_n last_o as_o they_o take_v and_o understand_v penance_n it_o be_v neither_o sacrament_n nor_o sacred_a it_o be_v neither_o holy_a sign_n nor_o holy_a thing_n it_o be_v neither_o a_o institution_n of_o god_n nor_o any_o way_n of_o god_n for_o they_o mean_v not_o thereby_o amendment_n of_o life_n or_o inward_a sorrow_n &_o grief_n of_o mind_n for_o the_o life_n past_a which_o be_v sometime_o testify_v by_o weep_v and_o mourn_v by_z sackcloth_z and_o ash_n by_o fast_v and_o humiliation_n but_o they_o understand_v by_o penance_n 〈◊〉_d external_a discipline_n satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n to_o god_n by_o our_o own_o suffering_n &_o that_o wear_n of_o sackcloth_n sprinkle_v of_o ash_n chastise_v of_o the_o body_n whip_v of_o the_o flesh_n put_v on_o rough_a apparel_n lie_v on_o bourd_n and_o hard_a place_n abstain_v from_o flesh_n and_o aflict_v ourselves_o by_o such_o outward_a exercise_n be_v a_o pay_v of_o the_o pain_n due_a to_o sin_n part_n of_o amends_n make_v to_o god_n justice_n and_o meritorious_a before_o he_o this_o punishment_n this_o penance_n these_o penalty_n we_o abhor_v as_o a_o horrible_a blasphemy_n against_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o only_a satisfaction_n to_o god_n for_o sin_n for_o if_o we_o satisfy_v for_o ourselves_o then_o have_v not_o christ_n satisfy_v for_o we_o nor_o pay_v the_o price_n due_a unto_o our_o sin_n beside_o they_o charge_v god_n the_o father_n with_o injustice_n in_o that_o have_v lay_v the_o guiltiness_n of_o our_o sin_n upon_o his_o own_o son_n and_o punish_v they_o in_o he_o they_o make_v he_o not_o satisfy_v with_o that_o punishment_n but_o to_o exact_v the_o debt_n of_o we_o again_o 7_o for_o which_o his_o son_n as_o our_o surety_n have_v full_o and_o sufficient_o answer_v as_o esa._n 53._o he_o be_v punish_v for_o our_o transgression_n he_o be_v bruise_v for_o our_o iniquity_n the_o chastisement_n of_o our_o peace_n be_v late_v upon_o he_o and_o by_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v the_o lord_n make_v the_o punishment_n of_o we_o all_o to_o light_v upon_o he_o likewise_o 5._o the_o apostle_n john_n say_v the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n do_v purge_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o revelation_n he_o add_v christ_n have_v wash_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n in_o his_o blood_n whereby_o we_o see_v we_o be_v teach_v to_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v pardon_v and_o reconcile_v to_o god_n not_o through_o our_o own_o satisfaction_n not_o for_o our_o own_o work_n not_o by_o our_o own_o suffering_n but_o only_o through_o the_o death_n and_o blood_n shed_v of_o christ._n wherefore_o their_o penance_n be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v sacrilege_n and_o accept_v as_o a_o sacrament_n chap._n 19_o that_o matrimony_n be_v not_o a_o sacrament_n the_o counsel_n of_o trent_n under_o pius_n 4._o sess._n 8_o decreeth_n 1._o if_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o matrimony_n be_v not_o true_o and_o proper_o one_o of_o the_o 7._o sacrament_n institute_v by_o christ_n but_o be_v bring_v in_o by_o man_n into_o the_o church_n and_o do_v not_o confer_v grace_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v hereby_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o dignity_n of_o marriage_n above_o we_o see_v they_o lift_v it_o up_o into_o the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o as_o a_o liar_n seldom_o agree_v with_o himself_o they_o complain_v that_o we_o too_o high_o magnify_v the_o marry_a estate_n and_o themselves_o can_v abide_v it_o in_o their_o clergy_n because_o for_o soothe_v it_o be_v write_v be_v you_o holy_a for_o i_o be_o holy_a they_o which_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n can_v please_v god_n marriage_n therefore_o be_v too_o holy_a a_o ordinance_n for_o their_o unholy_a clergy_n inasmuch_o as_o they_o teach_v in_o this_o point_n 3._o the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n and_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n that_o forbid_v marriage_n which_o god_n have_v leave_v free_a we_o confess_v touch_v
marriage_n somuch_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n teach_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o ordinance_n of_o god_n institute_v before_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n while_o he_o be_v without_o sin_n 18_o and_o bless_v of_o god_n who_o say_v it_o be_v not_o good_a for_o man_n to_o be_v alone_o let_v we_o make_v he_o a_o helper_n meet_v for_o he_o this_o estate_n christ_n do_v not_o abrogate_v and_o disannul_v but_o repeat_v and_o confirm_v 4._o not_o only_o by_o word_n but_o by_o his_o own_o presence_n and_o have_v leave_v it_o as_o a_o lawful_a remedy_n against_o fornication_n and_o uncleanness_n we_o account_v it_o a_o honourable_a estate_n of_o life_n among_o all_o and_o the_o bed_n undefiled_a but_o 10._o whoremonger_n and_o adulterer_n god_n will_v judge_v and_o cast_v into_o utter_a darkness_n where_o their_o worm_n shall_v never_o die_v and_o their_o fire_n shall_v not_o be_v quench_v as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v 1_o cor._n 6_o know_v you_o not_o that_o the_o unrighteous_a shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o deceive_v neither_o fornicator_n nor_o idolater_n nor_o adulterer_n nor_o wantoness_n nor_o bugger_n nor_o drunkard_n shall_v inhere_v it_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n notwithstanding_o sacrament_n we_o can_v call_v and_o account_v it_o a_o sacrament_n for_o diverse_a weighty_a reason_n &_o evident_a cause_n first_o it_o be_v not_o institute_v by_o christ_n but_o be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v before_o the_o law_n and_o under_o the_o law_n how_o can_v it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n again_o matrimony_n may_v be_v among_o infidel_n and_o unbeliever_n out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o society_n of_o the_o faithful_a for_o the_o matrimony_n of_o infidel_n be_v lawful_a god_n do_v institute_v it_o for_o all_o mankind_n the_o commandment_n be_v general_a increase_n and_o multiply_v the_o apole_n teach_v that_o if_o the_o unbelieve_a woman_n will_v dwell_v with_o the_o believe_a husband_n 39_o he_o must_v not_o put_v she_o away_o for_o her_o infidelity_n and_o marriage_n be_v honourable_a among_o all_o person_n see_v therefore_o it_o be_v before_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n before_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n under_o the_o government_n of_o the_o law_n and_o make_v honourable_a among_o all_o it_o can_v be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o for_o the_o member_n only_o of_o the_o church_n three_o it_o be_v not_o common_a and_o command_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a for_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a and_o necessary_a that_o all_o in_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v marry_v 12_o every_o one_o have_v his_o proper_a gift_n some_o one_o way_n some_o another_o and_o albeit_o god_n have_v not_o tie_v grace_n to_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o they_o in_o some_o sort_n church_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n and_o to_o be_v partake_v of_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o we_o respect_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n who_o require_v they_o or_o whether_o we_o regard_v our_o own_o weakness_n who_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o all_o holy_a mean_n and_o profitable_a help_n that_o tend_v to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n see_v then_o matrimony_n be_v not_o command_v to_o all_o neither_o serve_v to_o confirm_v faith_n it_o can_v be_v receive_v as_o a_o sacrament_n four_o the_o sacrament_n be_v ordinance_n of_o god_n aply_v christ_n and_o his_o merit_n to_o all_o the_o faithful_a but_o matrimony_n be_v not_o a_o instrument_n whereby_o god_n apply_v christ_n and_o all_o his_o benefit_n much_o less_o be_v it_o a_o common_a instrument_n of_o the_o common_a salvation_n and_o benefit_n that_o all_o have_v in_o christ_n jesus_n furthermore_o we_o have_v show_v how_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v contrary_a to_o itself_o in_o this_o point_n for_fw-mi ou_fw-fr adversary_n call_v matrimony_n a_o profanation_n 15._o of_o holy_a order_n and_o pigghius_n another_o say_v it_o be_v more_o tolerable_a for_o a_o priest_n to_o keep_v many_o concubine_n then_o to_o marry_v if_o matrimony_n be_v a_o holy_a sa_fw-fr how_o shall_v the_o sacred_a order_n of_o your_o priesthood_n be_v profane_v pollute_a and_o defile_v thereby_o last_o it_o 〈◊〉_d no_o promise_n of_o salvation_n join_v to_o it_o as_o it_o ought_v to_o have_v though_o it_o be_v lawful_a and_o use_v lawful_o in_o every_o sacra_fw-la there_o must_v be_v likewise_o a_o outward_a sign_n or_o element_n as_o water_n in_o baptism_n and_o breed_v and_o wine_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n together_o with_o a_o sand_n ctisieng_v word_n to_o warrant_v it_o but_o in_o this_o suppose_a sacra_fw-la there_o be_v neither_o matter_n nor_o word_n therefore_o no_o sacra_fw-la the_o answer_n that_o belarmin_n make_v to_o this_o last_o reason_n be_v as_o absurd_a as_o their_o doctrine_n itself_o namely_o that_o the_o word_n of_o iustitution_n be_v 6_o take_v thce_n which_o be_v the_o word_n express_v their_o mutual_a consent_n and_o that_o the_o matter_n or_o sign_n be_v the_o party_n marry_v for_o not_o every_o word_n can_v consecrate_v &_o sanctify_v 5_o but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n again_o the_o marry_a person_n be_v receiver_n of_o this_o pretend_a and_o suppose_a sa._n so_o that_o they_o can_v be_v the_o matter_n or_o sign_n for_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o receiver_n be_v two_o distinct_a outward_a part_n of_o a_o sa_o so_o that_o they_o can_v be_v consounded_a or_o mingle_v together_o as_o besore_n we_o declare_v chap_n 3_o the_o matter_n can_v be_v the_o receiver_n the_o receiver_n can_v be_v the_o matter_n the_o thing_n receive_v can_v be_v the_o receiver_n the_o receiver_n can_v be_v the_o thing_n receive_v if_o then_o the_o person_n maty_v be_v the_o receiver_n they_o can_v be_v the_o sign_n receive_v if_o any_o far_a object_n and_o say_v marriage_n be_v the_o sign_n of_o a_o holy_a thing_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o spiritual_a conjunction_n between_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o institute_v to_o confirm_v our_o faith_n in_o that_o point_n but_o for_o other_o end_n which_o we_o name_v before_o beside_o if_o we_o shall_v call_v all_o sign_n of_o holy_a thing_n sacrament_n we_o shall_v treble_v the_o number_n of_o 7._o for_o so_o many_o comparison_n as_o we_o find_v in_o scripture_n we_o shall_v have_v sacrament_n &_o then_o the_o star_n a_o grain_n of_o mustard_n seed_n leaven_n a_o draw-net_n a_o shepherd_n a_o vine_n a_o door_n nay_o a_o thief_n a_o murderer_n and_o infinite_a other_o thing_n shall_v be_v sacrament_n which_o sometime_o be_v make_v sign_n of_o holy_a thing_n this_o be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o increase_v the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n as_o to_o multiply_v absurdity_n last_o the_o sabbaoth_n be_v ordain_v to_o the_o jew_n to_o be_v a_o sign_n between_o god_n and_o his_o people_n in_o their_o generation_n 8_o and_o signify_v the_o spiritual_a rest_n in_o christ_n yet_o be_v it_o no_o ordinary_a sacrament_n albeit_o it_o be_v bless_v and_o sanctify_v of_o god_n wherefore_o all_o mystical_a and_o signify_v sign_n be_v not_o sacrament_n but_o the_o great_a reason_n where_o of_o they_o be_v most_o confident_a be_v where_o the_o vulgar_a translation_n and_o the_o rhemish_a interpretation_n 〈◊〉_d read_v this_o be_v a_o great_a sacrament_n i_o answer_v first_o the_o word_n signify_o a_o mystery_n or_o secret_a but_o not_o every_o mystery_n or_o secret_n be_v a_o sacrament_n neither_o will_v they_o admit_v a_o sacrament_n wheresoever_o a_o mystery_n be_v name_v second_o the_o apost_n speak_v not_o of_o matrimony_n but_o of_o the_o spiritual_a conjunction_n between_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n as_o the_o word_n follow_v do_v declare_v this_o be_v a_o great_a mystery_n but_o i_o speak_v of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o church_n where_o the_o apostle_n prevent_v this_o very_a objection_n and_o show_v in_o what_o respect_n he_o speak_v of_o a_o mystery_n for_o where_o one_o may_v happy_o object_v and_o say_v do_v thou_o call_v marriage_n this_o mystery_n he_o answer_v i_o speak_v not_o this_o of_o marriage_n i_o speak_v it_o in_o respect_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o church_n this_o appear_v likewise_o in_o that_o he_o call_v it_o a_o great_a mystery_n that_o be_v a_o great_a secret_a but_o the_o conjunction_n of_o man_n and_o wife_n be_v sensible_a not_o secret_a much_o less_o a_o great_a secret_a now_o the_o sacrament_n be_v call_v mystery_n 〈◊〉_d in_o respect_n of_o the_o sacramental_a union_n between_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o thing_n signify_v between_o the_o representation_n and_o the_o thing_n represent_v so_o that_o at_o the_o same_o instant_n that_o one_o be_v present_a to_o the_o eye_n the_o hand_n the_o mouth_n and_o every_o part_n and_o member_n of_o the_o body_n the_o other_o by_o the_o power_n and_o work_n of_o god_n spirit_n be_v as_o present_v in_o a_o wonderful_a mystical_a and_o secret_a manner_n to_o
the_o faith_n be_v the_o eye_n and_o hand_n of_o the_o soul_n wherefore_o cardinal_n caietan_n not_o so_o gross_a as_o many_o among_o they_o 5._o confess_v that_o these_o word_n prove_v not_o matrimony_n to_o be_v a_o sacra_fw-la further_o it_o be_v evident_a to_o all_o that_o consider_v the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n that_o the_o apostle_n not_o forth_o marriage_n in_o this_o place_n as_o a_o similitude_n to_o represent_v the_o near_a conjunction_n between_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n 32_o but_o 〈◊〉_d he_o bring_v forth_o the_o exceed_a and_o eminent_a love_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o 〈◊〉_d to_o declare_v and_o enforce_v what_o shall_v be_v the_o love_n of_o the_o husband_n towards_o the_o wife_n for_o the_o main_n point_n of_o exhortation_n be_v set_v down_o verse_n 25._o husband_n love_v your_o wife_n this_o be_v argue_v and_o enforce_v by_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n as_o christ_n love_v the_o church_n and_o give_v himself_o for_o it_o again_o the_o man_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o woman_n as_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o afterward_o he_o that_o love_v his_o wife_n love_v himself_o for_o no_o man_n ever_o yet_o hate_v his_o own_o flesh_n but_o nourish_v and_o cherish_v it_o even_o as_o the_o lord_n do_v the_o church_n by_o all_o these_o thing_n it_o be_v plain_a and_o manifest_a that_o if_o they_o will_v needs_o in_o this_o place_n dream_n of_o a_o sacrament_n consist_v of_o a_o sign_n and_o thing_n signisy_v christ_n and_o the_o church_n must_v be_v the_o sign_n representation_n and_o consecrate_a mystery_n to_o represent_v man_n and_o his_o wife_n and_o their_o mutual_a love_n each_o to_o other_o and_o not_o marriage_n a_o consecrate_a sign_n of_o he_o last_o of_o all_o i_o will_v know_v of_o they_o whether_o so_o often_o as_o the_o old_a translator_n use_v the_o word_n sacrament_n they_o will_v have_v it_o take_v strict_o proper_o and_o particular_o for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o their_o church_n i_o think_v if_o they_o be_v sober_a mind_a and_o well_o advise_v they_o dare_v not_o say_v so_o for_o 9_o then_o godliness_n shall_v be_v a_o sacrament_n god_n will_v shall_v be_v a_o sacrament_n the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v a_o sacrament_n yea_o iniquity_n shall_v be_v a_o sacrament_n for_o in_o all_o these_o place_n the_o word_n sacrament_n be_v use_v as_o well_o as_o in_o this_o place_n to_o the_o ephesian_n 7_o by_o the_o old_a interpreter_n &_o sometime_o in_o the_o good_a part_n and_o sometime_o in_o the_o evil_a trid._n to_o who_o notwithstanding_o they_o cleave_v and_o must_v cleave_v under_o pain_n of_o the_o censur_n and_o curse_v of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n chap._n 20._o that_o order_n be_v no_o sccrament_n by_o order_n we_o must_v understand_v the_o office_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n 3_o as_o also_o peter_n lombard_n do_v we_o confess_v when_o christ_n lead_v captivity_n captive_a he_o give_v gift_n unto_o man_n 11_o and_o ordain_v some_o to_o be_v apostle_n some_o prophet_n &_o some_o evangelist_n and_o some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o repair_n of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o body_n 25._o of_o christ._n by_o these_o he_o declare_v his_o will_n unto_o we_o he_o gather_v 16._o together_o his_o scatter_a sheep_n and_o publish_v the_o glad_a tiding_n 10_o of_o salvation_n as_o jer._n 7._o i_o have_v send_v unto_o you_o all_o my_o servant_n the_o prophet_n rise_v up_o early_o every_o date_n and_o christ_n our_o saviour_n say_v luc_n 10._o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o aespise_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v i_o despise_v he_o that_o send_v i_o and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n 2._o cor_n 5_o teach_v god_n be_v in_o christ_n and_o reconcile_v the_o world_n to_o himself_o not_o impute_v their_o sin_n unto_o they_o and_o have_v commit_v to_o we_o the_o word_n of_o reconciliation_n now_o then_o be_v we_o ambassador_n for_o christ_n as_o though_o god_n do_v beseech_v you_o through_o we_o we_o pray_v you_o in_o christ_n stead_n to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n this_o we_o hold_v this_o we_o believe_v this_o we_o teach_v touch_v the_o degree_n order_n and_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o the_o popish_a order_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n 1._o they_o say_v be_v seven_o whereof_o some_o be_v great_a and_o high_a office_n some_o be_v low_o lesser_a and_o inferior_a the_o great_a be_v three_o the_o office_n of_o priesthood_n to_o offer_v up_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o altar_n of_o deaconship_n to_o assist_v the_o priest_n in_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o bring_v in_o the_o oblation_n to_o set_v they_o upon_o the_o altar_n to_o cover_v it_o with_o clothes_n to_o bear_v the_o cross_n and_o to_o read_v the_o gospel_n and_o epistle_n to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o subdeacons_n to_o bring_v the_o chalice_n and_o patten_n to_o bring_v the_o cruet_v with_o water_n and_o the_o towel_n to_o the_o altar_n and_o to_o pour_v out_o water_n to_o wash_v their_o hand_n these_o be_v their_o high_a office_n above_o the_o rest_n as_o the_o high_a tree_n among_o the_o low_a shrub_n the_o lesser_a order_n be_v four_o in_o number_n first_o of_o dore-keeper_n these_o receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n door_n to_o open_v the_o same_o second_o of_o reader_n to_o read_v the_o bible_n to_o the_o people_n three_o of_o exorcist_n to_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n over_o such_o as_o have_v unclean_a spirit_n adjure_v and_o conjure_v they_o to_o come_v out_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n which_o power_n of_o command_v evil_a spirit_n be_v cease_v in_o the_o church_n last_o a_o colythes_n to_o prepare_v and_o carry_v torch_n and_o taper_n when_o the_o gospel_n be_v read_v to_o the_o people_n or_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v to_o be_v offer_v these_o seven_o popish_a order_n or_o rather_o plain_a disorder_n and_o consusion_n we_o can_v receive_v sacrament_n into_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n for_o 〈◊〉_d order_n be_v so_o fruitful_a that_o this_o bird_n have_v hatch_v seven_o young_a one_o this_o sacrament_n be_v so_o rich_a so_o rank_a so_o riotous_a that_o it_o have_v engender_v and_o bring_v forth_o seven_o petty_a and_o pretty_a sacrament_n and_o therefore_o these_o be_v number_v and_o patch_v up_o to_o the_o former_a we_o shall_v have_v 13._o sacrament_n a_o goodly_a brood_n of_o a_o gallant_a egg_n for_o if_o every_o one_o of_o these_o order_n of_o doorkeeper_n reader_n exorsiste_v acolithes_n subdeacons_n deacons_n and_o priest_n be_v sacrament_n we_o shall_v multiply_v the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o these_o order_n and_o so_o indeed_o of_o seven_o we_o shall_v have_v 13._o sacrament_n which_o be_v a_o very_a disorderly_a order_n or_o if_o you_o list_v to_o call_v it_o a_o orderly_a disorder_n and_o so_o peter_n lombard_n master_n of_o the_o sentence_n 1_o call_v not_o order_n a_o sacrament_n as_o speak_v of_o one_o but_o sacrament_n as_o speak_v of_o many_o say_v order_n be_v call_v sacrament_n because_o in_o receive_v of_o they_o grace_n be_v confer_v which_o be_v represent_v by_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v there_o perform_v neither_o can_v they_o say_v they_o all_o make_v but_o one_o sacrament_n sce_v they_o be_v distinct_a office_n one_o from_o another_o diverse_a in_o office_n in_o institution_n in_o call_v in_o ordination_n in_o ceremony_n and_o in_o form_n of_o consecration_n so_o that_o they_o may_v by_o as_o good_a right_n and_o as_o great_a reason_n make_v baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n one_o sacrament_n as_o all_o these_o order_n so_o diverse_a and_o distinct_a the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o second_o sacrament_n have_v their_o institution_n from_o christ_n order_n have_v not_o their_o institution_n from_o christ_n to_o be_v sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o order_n be_v no_o sacrament_n nay_o as_o they_o be_v retain_v &_o use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o be_v no_o ordinance_n or_o institution_n of_o christ_n at_o all_o for_o touch_v the_o osfice_n of_o priesthood_n to_o offer_v up_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a of_o deacons_n to_o serve_v these_o baal_n priest_n at_o their_o idolatrous_a altar_n of_o subdeacons_n of_o reader_n and_o of_o the_o rest_n they_o be_v not_o find_v in_o scripture_n neither_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n neither_o be_v they_o receive_v into_o the_o church_n for_o many_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n the_o new_a testament_n as_o it_o do_v acknowledge_v no_o other_o sacrificer_n and_o sacrifice_n but_o christ_n so_o it_o admit_v no_o priest_n no_o priesthood_n but_o
circumcise_v he_o have_v dwell_v in_o h_o land_n of_o midian_a a_o idolatrous_a country_n 40._o year_n he_o begin_v to_o savour_n of_o the_o manner_n thereof_o but_o have_v call_v he_o to_o be_v a_o governor_n of_o people_n will_v not_o be_v appease_v towards_o he_o until_o he_o have_v reform_v his_o own_o house_n for_o if_o any_o can_v 5_o rule_v 〈◊〉_d own_o house_n how_o shall_v he_o care_v for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n now_o whereas_o he_o have_v two_o son_n bear_v unto_o he_o in_o midian_a the_o elder_n no_o doubt_n be_v circumcise_v the_o eight_o day_n according_a to_o the_o order_n and_o ordinance_n of_o god_n why_o then_o do_v he_o defer_v the_o circumcise_n of_o the_o young_a no_o doubt_v he_o be_v scorn_v and_o deride_v among_o they_o for_o circumcise_n his_o first_o bear_v and_o his_o enemy_n be_v those_o of_o his_o own_o house_n even_o the_o wife_n that_o lie_v in_o his_o bosom_n yea_o he_o be_v then_o weak_a in_o faith_n love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n more_o than_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o the_o lord_n will_v have_v slay_v he_o albeit_o the_o sign_n of_o circumcision_n seem_v base_a and_o contemptible_a in_o outward_a show_n and_o to_o savour_n of_o great_a cruelty_n towards_o little_a child_n yet_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v the_o defer_v and_o neglect_v thereof_o to_o go_v without_o punishment_n although_o grace_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v save_v without_o they_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o leave_v to_o the_o disposition_n of_o man_n whether_o they_o will_v come_v to_o they_o or_o not_o god_n will_v not_o have_v the_o outward_a sign_n contemn_v of_o we_o for_o if_o we_o will_v be_v in_o the_o covenant_n we_o must_v not_o despise_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n furthermore_o be_v the_o outward_a part_n unite_v to_o the_o inward_a then_o this_o serve_v as_o a_o special_a mean_n to_o comfort_v the_o very_o 3._o low_a estate_n of_o man_n and_o the_o poor_a degree_n in_o the_o church_n that_o they_o doubt_v not_o of_o the_o fatherly_a favour_n of_o god_n toward_o they_o but_o be_v assure_v of_o their_o acceptation_n with_o god_n who_o will_v make_v they_o partaker_n of_o his_o eternal_a blessing_n in_o his_o kingdom_n as_o well_o as_o other_o who_o condition_n be_v great_a and_o high_a in_o the_o world_n when_o god_n give_v circumcision_n to_o abraham_n he_o command_v he_o circumcise_v 27_o all_o his_o servant_n bond_n or_o free_a as_o well_o bear_v in_o his_o house_n as_o buy_v with_o his_o money_n thereby_o signify_v that_o he_o adopt_v they_o for_o his_o child_n and_o that_o albert_n they_o be_v abraham_n bondman_n 22_o yet_o they_o be_v the_o lord_n free_a man_n so_o unto_o baptism_n we_o admit_v and_o receive_v the_o poor_a as_o well_o as_o the_o rich_a the_o servant_n as_o well_o as_o the_o master_n the_o low_a as_o well_o as_o the_o high_a without_o respect_n of_o person_n when_o the_o lord_n institute_v the_o passover_o 3_o the_o lamb_n be_v eat_v of_o all_o the_o congregation_n so_o touch_v the_o lord_n supper_n it_o be_v a_o holy_a banquet_n for_o all_o degree_n and_o condition_n whatsoever_o and_o therefore_o 23._o the_o apostle_n check_v the_o corinthian_n for_o this_o abuse_n that_o whereas_o the_o poor_a soul_n eat_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o drink_n of_o the_o cup_n be_v as_o welcome_v to_o christ_n the_o governor_n of_o the_o seast_z as_o the_o rich_a they_o do_v despise_v the_o poor_a and_o shame_v they_o that_o have_v not_o all_o these_o thing_n due_o consider_v serve_v to_o assure_v the_o very_o mean_a low_a and_o simple_a in_o the_o church_n that_o they_o be_v make_v heir_n of_o eternal_a life_n as_o well_o as_o other_o as_o they_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o sign_n with_o other_o if_o they_o believe_v with_o faithful_a abraham_n this_o the_o apostle_n 11_o teach_v there_o be_v netther_o jew_n nor_o grecian_a there_o be_v neither_o bond_n nor_o free_a there_o be_v neither_o male_a nor_o female_a for_o you_o be_v all_o one_o in_o christ._n and_o col._n 3._o there_o be_v neither_o grecian_a nor_o jew_n circumcision_n nor_o uncircumcision_n barbarian_a scythian_a bond_n free_a but_o christ_n be_v all_o and_o in_o all_o thing_n four_o be_v there_o outward_a rite_n sign_n and_o person_n as_o 4._o external_a part_n of_o baptism_n and_o be_v their_o likewise_o inward_a part_n whereby_o we_o be_v consecrate_v to_o god_n teach_v that_o we_o have_v vow_v to_o renounce_v the_o lust_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o forsake_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n then_o this_o solemnize_v condemn_v those_o that_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o church_n before_o this_o holy_a and_o public_a action_n be_v take_v in_o hand_n baptism_n belong_v not_o only_o to_o the_o witness_n and_o party_n that_o bring_v the_o child_n but_o to_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n that_o we_o may_v learn_v by_o our_o presence_n thereat_o to_o renew_v our_o faith_n and_o repentance_n unto_o god_n these_o man_n do_v too_o much_o disgrace_n and_o deface_v the_o dignity_n of_o this_o sacrament_n not_o vouchsafe_v to_o remain_v at_o the_o administration_n thereof_o as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v solemnize_v before_o they_o whereas_o they_o shall_v quicken_v their_o faith_n in_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n by_o behold_v the_o work_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o ratifieng_v they_o in_o their_o heart_n 59_o as_o we_o read_v luk._n 1._o where_o they_o be_v say_v to_o circumcise_v because_o they_o be_v all_o present_a at_o the_o work_n consent_v to_o prayer_n and_o thanks_o giving_n of_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d as_o also_o the_o apostle_n say_v woman_n pray_v and_o prophesy_v in_o the_o church_n when_o they_o sit_v still_o and_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o prayer_n and_o preach_v use_v in_o the_o public_a assembly_n and_o as_o no_o member_n be_v cut_v off_o by_o excommunication_n 4._o but_o in_o presence_n of_o all_o to_o be_v witness_n thereof_o &_o to_o ratify_v their_o grief_n for_o the_o loss_n of_o a_o member_n of_o their_o body_n so_o in_o 〈◊〉_d baptism_n it_o be_v require_v to_o witness_v and_o approve_v the_o public_a work_n by_o their_o presence_n and_o to_o 〈◊〉_d themselves_o thereby_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o comfort_n hata_fw-la fellow-heire_n be_v make_v partaker_n with_o they_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n moreover_o the_o excellency_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v as_o great_a as_o of_o the_o other_o they_o be_v of_o like_a worthiness_n in_o themselves_o and_o to_o be_v have_v equal_a and_o indifferent_o in_o like_a price_n and_o estimation_n they_o be_v both_o command_v and_o institute_v by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d authority_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v the_o same_o matter_n and_o substance_n of_o both_o to_o wit_n christ_n with_o all_o his_o benefit_n there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d one_o and_o the_o same_o end_n of_o both_o the_o increase_n and_o strengthen_n of_o our_o faith_n therefore_o why_o shall_v one_o sacrament_n be_v so_o much_o extol_v above_o the_o other_o and_o prefer_v before_o the_o other_o so_o that_o whereas_o many_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n supper_n few_o remain_n and_o abide_v in_o the_o church_n at_o the_o administration_n of_o baptism_n the_o whole_a assembly_n hear_v the_o word_n preach_v and_o deliver_v by_o the_o minister_n the_o sacrament_n be_v instrument_n of_o our_o justification_n by_o faith_n 〈◊〉_d as_o well_o as_o the_o word_n preach_v save_v that_o the_o word_n work_v by_o hear_v only_o the_o sacrament_n serve_v by_o the_o sense_n of_o see_v handle_v and_o taste_v as_o well_o as_o hear_n to_o strengthen_v and_o increase_v faith_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o we_o join_v in_o the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o other_o furthermore_o the_o excellency_n and_o worthiness_n of_o baptism_n appear_v herein_o in_o that_o it_o be_v institute_v of_o god_n seal_v up_o his_o gracious_a covenant_n in_o that_o it_o be_v sanctify_v by_o christ_n be_v baptize_v of_o john_n and_o in_o that_o it_o be_v beautify_v by_o the_o heavenly_a revelation_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n appear_v thereat_o so_o great_a honour_n so_o great_a dignity_n and_o pre-eminence_n be_v never_o give_v to_o any_o ceremony_n do_v god_n institute_v it_o and_o shall_v we_o contemn_v it_o do_v jesus_n christ_n come_v to_o johns_n baptism_n and_o shall_v we_o disdain_v to_o be_v at_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o holy_a trinity_n present_a &_o will_v we_o be_v absent_a true_a it_o be_v some_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o burn_a offering_n be_v 4_o miraculous_o consume_v by_o fire_n from_o heaven_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o glorious_a presence_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n the_o bless_a trinity_n declare_v to_o we_o thereby_o that_o god_n the_o father_n god_n the_o son_n and_o 〈◊〉_d god_n the_o holyghost_n be_v always_o present_a at_o
they_o part_n of_o the_o minister_n office_n but_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a to_o labour_v in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o great_a gift_n require_v and_o of_o the_o fruit_n that_o flow_v and_o follow_v from_o thence_o to_o their_o hearer_n it_o be_v the_o high_a ordinance_n of_o god_n to_o save_v such_o as_o believe_v that_o this_o be_v the_o apostle_n mind_n and_o meaning_n appear_v by_o the_o word_n immediate_o ensue_v where_o he_o reckon_v up_o some_o who_o he_o have_v baptize_v which_o he_o will_v never_o have_v do_v or_o attempt_v without_o a_o calling_n true_a it_o be_v the_o dignity_n &_o force_n of_o baptism_n depend_v not_o upon_o the_o worthiness_n or_o excellency_n of_o the_o minister_n thereof_o but_o on_o the_o authority_n and_o institution_n of_o god_n who_o only_o remit_v sin_n and_o baptize_v with_o the_o holyghost_n this_o appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o such_o as_o cast_v out_o devil_n 23_o in_o christ_n name_n of_o who_o christ_n say_v he_o know_v they_o not_o so_o judu_n be_v send_v out_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o teach_v 3_o and_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o to_o heal_v 3_o every_o sickness_n and_o every_o disease_n among_o the_o people_n yet_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o perdition_n that_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v two_o fulfil_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n sit_v in_o moses_n his_o chair_n for_o this_o cause_n christ_n himself_o will_v baptize_v no_o man_n joh._n 4_o lest_o any_o shall_v esteem_v of_o baptism_n by_o the_o worthiness_n or_o unworthines_n of_o the_o minister_n nevertheless_o baptize_v it_o be_v require_v that_o baptism_n be_v do_v and_o deliver_v by_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o one_o repute_v so_o to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o may_v be_v confirm_v by_o sundry_a reason_n first_o baptism_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o ministry_n which_o none_o may_v undertake_v but_o such_o as_o be_v thereunto_o lawful_o call_v god_n have_v join_v the_o 6_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n together_o and_o what_o god_n have_v couple_v together_o let_v no_o man_n separate_v math_n 19_o 6._o but_o woman_n or_o private_a person_n may_v not_o be_v admit_v to_o teach_v in_o the_o public_a assembly_n 35._o in_o a_o true_a and_o well_o order_v chutch_n 1_o cor_n 14._o let_v your_o woman_n keep_v silence_n in_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v not_o permit_v unto_o they_o to_o speak_v but_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v subtect_v twelve_o as_o also_o the_o law_n say_v and_o if_o they_o will_v learn_v any_o thing_n let_v they_o ask_v their_o husband_n at_o home_n for_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n for_o woman_n to_o speak_v in_o the_o churcb_n and_o 1_o tim_n 2_o let_v your_o woman_n learn_v in_o silence_n with_o all_o subjection_n i_o permit_v not_o a_o woman_n to_o teach_v neither_o to_o usurp_v authority_n over_o the_o man_n but_o to_o be_v in_o silence_n likewise_o 〈◊〉_d the_o apostle_n reprove_v the_o church_n of_o thyatira_n that_o it_o suffer_v a_o woman_n to_o teach_v among_o they_o and_o to_o exercise_v the_o public_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n contrary_a to_o god_n commandment_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o god_n people_n i_o confess_v xiiii_o there_o have_v be_v prophettess_n in_o the_o church_n as_o deborab_n huldah_n hannah_n the_o four_o daughter_n of_o philip_n with_o some_o other_o but_o the_o example_n be_v extraordinary_a and_o therefore_o can_v make_v a_o ordinary_a 9_o 〈◊〉_d for_o imitation_n the_o cause_n hereof_o be_v direct_a and_o evident_a for_o to_o teach_v public_o be_v a_o token_n of_o authority_n and_o rule_n over_o other_o in-asmuch_a as_o the_o teacher_n be_v high_a in_o place_n and_o authority_n than_o he_o that_o be_v teach_v as_o paul_n be_v bring_v up_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o 3_o gamaliell_n and_o as_o the_o less_o be_v bless_v of_o 7_o the_o great_a therefore_o the_o woman_n shall_v not_o be_v admit_v to_o be_v a_o master_n in_o israel_n a_o teacher_n and_o instructor_n of_o man_n as_o 1_o tim._n 2_o where_o the_o apostle_n forbid_v they_o to_o teach_v public_o and_o to_o usurp_v authority_n over_o the_o man_n but_o require_v of_o they_o to_o be_v in_o subjection_n not_o to_o challenge_v dominion_n again_o such_o be_v the_o 30_o frailness_n and_o weakness_n of_o that_o sex_n that_o they_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v seduce_v and_o deceive_v and_o so_o fit_a to_o be_v author_n of_o much_o mischief_n be_v the_o weak_a vessel_n therefore_o paul_n have_v set_v down_o the_o doctrine_n that_o woman_n shall_v not_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n and_o so_o preach_v in_o the_o assembly_n of_o man_n present_o allege_v this_o reason_n 6_o that_o the_o woman_n be_v first_o deceive_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o be_v in_o the_o transgression_n he_o make_v choice_n of_o she_o and_o make_v she_o a_o instrument_n to_o be_v guile_n her_o busband_n furthermore_o the_o minister_n represent_v god_n person_n in_o this_o holy_a work_n and_o theresore_n he_o only_o can_v offer_v and_o deliver_v with_o power_n and_o authority_n the_o outward_a sign_n which_o answer_v fit_o to_o the_o inward_a matter_n shall_v private_a person_n usurp_v to_o be_v the_o lord_n messenger_n to_o bring_v his_o letter_n and_o seal_n not_o call_v not_o allow_v not_o authorise_v it_o can_v be_v without_o intrude_a of_o themselves_o and_o dishonour_n to_o god_n as_o none_o can_v wash_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n but_o christ_n only_o so_o none_o can_v bear_v his_o person_n in_o the_o outward_a sacrament_n of_o the_o inward_a wash_n but_o he_o who_o christ_n himself_o have_v appoint_v if_o we_o will_v receive_v the_o benefit_n of_o the_o holy_a seal_n of_o baptism_n for_o the_o assurance_n of_o our_o conscience_n person_n that_o we_o be_v wash_v from_o our_o sin_n and_o if_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o a_o prince_n do_v make_v that_o only_o to_o be_v his_o seal_n which_o he_o have_v set_v apart_o to_o seal_v his_o grant_v withal_o so_o that_o albeit_o another_o be_v make_v right_a of_o the_o same_o matter_n just_a of_o the_o same_o form_n and_o fashion_n and_o in_o all_o point_n like_v unto_o it_o no_o difference_n be_v to_o be_v see_v between_o they_o yet_o the_o same_o be_v none_o of_o the_o prince_n seal_n but_o a_o counterfcit_fw-la stamp_n then_o now_o much_o more_o ought_v the_o know_a will_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n which_o be_v that_o they_o only_o shall_v minister_v the_o sacrament_n that_o have_v a_o public_a call_n and_o allowance_n thereunto_o to_o have_v that_o authority_n that_o no_o sacrament_n can_v be_v warrant_v to_o be_v his_o 〈◊〉_d but_o such_o as_o be_v sign_v by_o his_o officer_n again_o 141._o suppose_v the_o princess_n seal_n shall_v be_v steal_v away_o which_o he_o have_v appoint_v to_o seal_v his_o grant_n withal_o and_o shall_v be_v set_v too_o by_o he_o that_o have_v no_o authority_n not_o be_v the_o keeper_n thereof_o there_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n grow_v any_o assurance_n of_o comfort_n to_o the_o party_n that_o have_v it_o apply_v to_o his_o write_n so_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o be_v the_o seal_n of_o god_n which_o a_o woman_n shall_v set_v to_o yet_o for_o that_o she_o have_v steal_v her_o patent_n and_o use_v it_o contrary_n to_o god_n commandment_n i_o see_v not_o how_o any_o man_n can_v persuade_v his_o own_o hart_n by_o it_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o a_o sacrament_n but_o his_o comfort_n be_v weaken_v and_o impair_v and_o his_o conscience_n leave_v in_o doubt_n and_o perplexity_n moreover_o this_o may_v yet_o far_o appear_v by_o a_o comparison_n a_o form_n of_o reason_v often_o use_v in_o the_o scripture_n compare_v different_a action_n of_o thing_n do_v by_o a_o calling_n with_o such_o as_o be_v do_v without_o a_o calling_n whereby_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o to_o have_v a_o lawful_a calling_n to_o do_v a_o thing_n give_v life_n like_v and_o allowance_n unto_o the_o do_v for_o we_o must_v not_o only_o consider_v what_o be_v do_v but_o also_o who_o be_v the_o doer_n what_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o joab_n captain_n of_o the_o host_n 5_o kill_v abner_n and_o amasa_n two_o more_o righteous_a than_o himself_o be_v reserve_v to_o judgement_n 8_o whereas_o phinchas_n kill_v zimri_n and_o cosbi_n it_o be_v impute_v unto_o he_o for_o right_a cousnes_n what_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o peter_n be_v reprove_v for_o draw_v his_o sword_n and_o smite_v the_o high_a priest_n servant_n be_v command_v to_o put_v up_o the_o sword_n because_o so_o many_o as_o 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o sword_n shall_v perish_v with_o 52_o the_o sword_n whereas_o the_o high_a power_n which_o be_v god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o take_v vengeance_n on_o he_o 4_o that_o do_v evil_a and_o not_o to_o bear_v the_o
sword_n in_o vain_a be_v it_o not_o that_o phinehas_n be_v stir_v up_o and_o call_v of_o god_n to_o do_v execution_n but_o joah_n be_v stir_v up_o by_o the_o devil_n to_o see_v and_o to_o seek_v his_o own_o revenge_n be_v it_o not_o that_o peter_n be_v a_o private_a man_n to_o who_o god_n have_v say_v 13_o thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v but_o the_o magistrate_n be_v ordain_v of_o god_n to_o who_o he_o have_v say_v 8_o thy_o eye_n shall_v not_o pity_v he_o who_o i_o have_v appoint_v to_o die_v wherefore_o there_o be_v more_o to_o be_v mark_v of_o we_o then_o the_o deed_n that_o be_v do_v see_v the_o same_o deed_n perform_v by_o a_o person_n that_o have_v a_o call_n be_v like_v and_o lawful_a the_o which_o do_v without_o a_o call_n be_v ungodly_a and_o unlawful_a this_o truth_n be_v so_o plain_a and_o apparent_a that_o the_o heathen_a 3_o poet_n do_v acknowledge_v it_o duo_o cumidem_fw-la faciunt_fw-la saepe_fw-la ut_fw-la possis_fw-la dicere_fw-la hoc_fw-la licet_fw-la impune_fw-la facere_fw-la huic_fw-la illi_fw-la non_fw-la licet_fw-la non_fw-la quod_fw-la dissimilis_fw-la res_fw-la sit_fw-la sed_fw-la be_v qui_fw-la facit_fw-la that_o be_v though_o two_o a_o act_n attempt_n in_o substance_n one_o as_o do_v befall_v yet_o one_o we_o oft_o as_o lawful_a like_o the_o other_o unlawful_a call_n not_o that_o the_o deed_n be_v differ_v the_o doer_n be_v all_o in_o all_o so_o then_o to_o say_v that_o a_o woman_n may_v minister_v baptism_n in_o case_n of_o necessity_n be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o judge_n or_o magistrate_n at_o hand_n that_o will_v do_v his_o duty_n in_o execute_v justice_n against_o murderer_n and_o malefactor_n that_o then_o a_o private_a man_n may_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o draw_v the_o sword_n out_o of_o the_o sheath_n to_o strike_v osfendor_n but_o as_o a_o private_a man_n flay_v a_o murderer_n have_v himself_o commit_v murder_n and_o not_o execute_v judgement_n because_o he_o have_v no_o calling_n or_o commission_n thereunto_o so_o such_o as_o without_o any_o warrant_n have_v take_v in_o hand_n to_o baptise_v have_v make_v a_o profane_a wash_n and_o not_o administer_v any_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n last_o if_o it_o be_v not_o material_a who_o baptise_v then_o if_o the_o friend_n or_o neighbour_n meet_v together_o after_o the_o birth_n of_o a_o child_n shall_v carry_v the_o child_n to_o the_o church_n ro_o be_v baptize_v and_o solemn_o dedicate_v to_o christ_n that_o die_v on_o the_o cross_n if_o a_o private_a person_n prevent_v their_o purpose_n cast_v water_n on_o the_o infant_n and_o with_o all_o use_n the_o word_n of_o institution_n the_o child_n shall_v by_o this_o imagination_n be_v baptize_v and_o be_v carry_v no_o further_o to_o the_o minister_n or_o if_o no_o man_n of_o purpose_n pour_v on_o water_n but_o it_o dash_v at_o unwares_o upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o child_n or_o if_o a_o shower_n of_o rain_n fall_v from_o heaven_n and_o a_o private_a person_n speak_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n it_o shall_v likewise_o be_v baptism_n nay_o which_o be_v more_o unreasonable_a and_o absurd_a 85_o if_o it_o be_v minister_v by_o a_o boy_n play_v and_o in_o sport_n if_o it_o be_v minister_v by_o a_o fool_n or_o a_o mad_a man_n if_o it_o be_v minister_v by_o one_o that_o be_v not_o himself_o baptize_v if_o it_o be_v by_o a_o turk_n or_o infidel_n that_o be_v a_o swear_a enemy_n by_o profession_n to_o baptism_n and_o to_o they_o that_o be_v baptize_v yea_o if_o it_o be_v minister_v by_o a_o atheist_n that_o hold_v there_o be_v no_o god_n yet_o it_o shall_v be_v by_o this_o opinion_n a_o good_a lawful_a and_o perfect_a baptism_n but_o see_v this_o can_v be_v so_o we_o be_v not_o only_o to_o observe_v what_o be_v the_o deed_n do_v but_o to_o consider_v who_o be_v the_o doer_n and_o to_o provide_v it_o be_v do_v by_o the_o minister_n warrant_v by_o the_o church_n and_o call_v of_o god_n thereunto_o before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o use_v hereof_o we_o will_v answer_v a_o objection_n from_o the_o example_n of_o zipporah_n the_o wife_n of_o moses_n who_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n circumcise_v her_o son_n and_o god_n depart_v from_o pursuinge_v her_o husband_n to_o the_o death_n for_o omit_v thereof_o to_o this_o we_o may_v answer_v that_o we_o must_v live_v by_o law_n not_o by_o example_n which_o have_v no_o warrant_n the_o question_n be_v not_o of_o the_o fact_n but_o of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o fact_n again_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o circumcision_n and_o baptism_n for_o this_o fall_n out_o before_o the_o law_n be_v more_o lawful_a when_o circumcision_n be_v leave_v more_o at_o liberty_n yea_o under_o the_o law_n there_o be_v no_o special_a commandment_n give_v to_o the_o priest_n to_o circumcise_v which_o shall_v tie_v it_o to_o the_o priesthood_n but_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n have_v appoint_v the_o same_o person_n to_o be_v preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o sacrament_n moreover_o inasmuch_o as_o she_o do_v it_o 26._o not_o in_o the_o absence_n but_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o her_o husband_n and_o inasmuch_o as_o her_o hart_n be_v not_o upright_o but_o fill_v with_o anger_n against_o god_n with_o indignation_n against_o her_o husband_n with_o murmaringe_v and_o frettinge_v against_o the_o institution_n of_o circumcision_n castinge_v the_o foreskin_n with_o great_a disdain_n upon_o the_o earth_n regard_v nothing_o less_o than_o to_o perform_v a_o good_a duty_n to_o god_n rail_v upon_o and_o revile_v moses_n the_o act_n can_v be_v lawful_a or_o approved_a furthermore_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o moses_n be_v sick_a as_o some_o pretend_v but_o it_o be_v most_o probaple_n and_o likely_a that_o zipporah_n want_v discretion_n but_o not_o presumption_n through_o her_o boldness_n and_o hastiness_n prevent_v moses_n and_o adventure_v on_o the_o work_n before_o the_o prophet_n can_v prepare_v himself_o unto_o it_o neither_o may_v we_o by_o the_o sequel_n and_o success_n conclude_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o her_o deed_n 7._o as_o bellarmine_n do_v because_o the_o angel_n cease_v from_o vex_v he_o that_o therefore_o god_n be_v pacify_v please_v and_o appeal_v toward_o he_o for_o the_o heathen_a man_n condemn_v such_o as_o measure_v action_n putat_fw-la by_o the_o event_n as_o by_o a_o false_a rule_n and_o deceitful_a measure_n we_o see_v oftentimes_o evil_a work_n prosper_v and_o evil_a work_n speed_n well_o in_o this_o world_n the_o assyrian_n that_o halt_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o mingle_v his_o honour_n with_o idol_n be_v deliver_v frow_fw-mi the_o 25._o lion_n that_o devour_v they_o yet_o their_o corrupt_a and_o consused_a religion_n please_v not_o god_n wherefore_o we_o conclude_v that_o whereas_o this_o woman_n administer_v circumcision_n her_o example_n must_v not_o be_v draw_v into_o imitation_n now_o as_o the_o truth_n be_v plain_a and_o evident_a so_o the_o use_n be_v profitable_a and_o comfortable_a first_o if_o the_o minister_n be_v one_o outward_a 1._o part_n of_o baptism_n than_o he_o must_v be_v ready_a and_o careful_a to_o perform_v his_o duty_n which_o be_v to_o wash_v the_o unclean_a body_n with_o water_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holyghost_n to_o call_v upon_o god_n and_o to_o follow_v the_o institution_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v leave_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o his_o direction_n for_o if_o there_o be_v the_o outward_a sign_n of_o baptism_n as_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n if_o there_o be_v a_o party_n to_o be_v baptize_v which_o be_v the_o receiver_n and_o if_o there_o he_o a_o minister_n to_o administer_v it_o yet_o unless_o he_o perform_v his_o duty_n there_o can_v be_v no_o baptism_n so_o then_o we_o must_v know_v that_o the_o action_n of_o the_o minister_n minister_n be_v double_a first_o there_o be_v require_v of_o he_o a_o sanctify_a of_o the_o water_n sccond_o a_o wash_n of_o the_o party_n the_o sanctify_a of_o the_o water_n be_v the_o separation_n and_o appoint_v of_o it_o by_o the_o word_n and_o prayer_n to_o this_o use_n to_o signify_v the_o blood_n of_o christ._n the_o outward_a wash_n be_v a_o certain_a pledge_n unto_o we_o of_o our_o inward_a wash_n by_o the_o blood_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n second_o if_o it_o be_v the_o ossice_v of_o the_o minister_n to_o baptize_v 2._o then_o this_o give_v direction_n and_o instruction_n to_o the_o people_n to_o who_o to_o repair_v and_o resort_v when_o they_o have_v any_o child_n to_o be_v baptize_v it_o be_v require_v of_o they_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o minister_n as_o to_o the_o officer_n of_o god_n we_o see_v in_o the_o asfiair_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o in_o pass_v conveyance_n of_o house_n of_o land_n and_o of_o
inhritance_n how_o careful_a and_o circumspect_a man_n be_v to_o pass_v they_o where_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v pass_v and_o in_o such_o court_n and_o under_o such_o officer_n as_o be_v authorise_v for_o such_o purpose_n that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o error_n commit_v in_o the_o conveyance_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v and_o pass_v before_o he_o that_o have_v not_o his_o patent_n to_o warrant_v his_o practice_n be_v hold_v to_o be_v void_a and_o frustrate_v by_o master_n of_o that_o profession_n in_o like_a manner_n it_o stand_v we_o all_o upon_o when_o a_o matter_n of_o a_o high_a nature_n and_o of_o great_a importance_n be_v in_o hand_n than_o the_o seal_n and_o assure_v of_o temporal_a possession_n to_o look_v careful_o to_o the_o diligent_a performance_n of_o this_o special_a duty_n that_o the_o sign_v of_o our_o infant_n and_o seal_v they_o in_o the_o covenant_n be_v make_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o such_o officer_n as_o be_v appoint_v by_o god_n for_o that_o purpose_n and_o by_o no_o other_o three_o this_o condemn_v the_o abuse_n and_o profanation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n where_o 3._o woman_n midwife_n and_o private_a person_n without_o any_o commandment_n of_o god_n nay_o contrary_a to_o his_o word_n take_v upon_o they_o this_o part_n of_o the_o minister_n office_n to_o baptize_v child_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d martion_n 42_o who_o give_v woman_n power_n to_o baptize_v which_o epiphanius_n 〈◊〉_d teach_v the_o holy_a mother_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o permit_v to_o do_v such_o then_o as_o usurp_v this_o call_n and_o approve_v thereof_o never_o know_v the_o force_n of_o our_o adoption_n in_o christ_n nor_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o covenant_n nor_o that_o the_o elect_v be_v save_v by_o the_o good_a pleasure_n and_o will_n of_o god_n therefore_o there_o be_v not_o that_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o baptism_n to_o salvation_n which_o many_o suppose_v that_o for_o this_o suppose_a necessity_n the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v break_v and_o profane_v and_o a_o man_n may_v marvel_v why_o at_o such_o time_n they_o do_v not_o rather_o commit_v the_o mater_fw-la to_o private_a man_n to_o baptize_v then_o to_o woman_n who_o sex_n be_v surth_o remove_v from_o execution_n of_o this_o office_n not_o only_o because_o they_o be_v uncalled_a and_o private_a man_n 34_o but_o even_o because_o they_o be_v woman_n and_o thereby_o be_v whole_o uncapable_a though_o otherwise_o qualify_v of_o any_o public_a charge_n or_o function_n in_o the_o church_n they_o be_v command_v to_o sit_v still_o and_o to_o be_v quiet_a beside_o if_o in_o time_n of_o this_o extremity_n and_o necessity_n which_o be_v imagen_v it_o be_v permit_v they_o to_o minister_v baptism_n why_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v suffer_v in_o like_a necessity_n and_o danger_n of_o death_n that_o they_o minister_v the_o lord_n supper_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o case_n they_o be_v able_a and_o man_n unable_a or_o unwilling_a the_o dignity_n of_o the_o one_o sacrament_n be_v no_o less_o than_o the_o other_o and_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o word_n be_v as_o great_a as_o of_o they_o both_o if_o then_o woman_n may_v just_o be_v condemn_v when_o they_o shall_v presume_v to_o sit_v down_o in_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n or_o to_o minister_v the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n they_o can_v be_v justify_v if_o they_o usurp_v to_o minister_v baptism_n for_o shall_v we_o make_v a_o shameful_a and_o double_a divorcement_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o god_n have_v couple_v between_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o likewise_o between_o the_o one_o sacrament_n and_o the_o other_o this_o be_v to_o great_a contumely_n and_o contempt_n offer_v to_o baptism_n to_o allow_v it_o in_o those_o that_o may_v neither_o public_o preach_v nor_o lawful_o minister_v the_o lord_n supper_n see_v their_o warrant_n to_o practice_v the_o one_o be_v no_o great_a than_o to_o do_v the_o other_o wherefore_o let_v all_o private_a persous_a and_o midwife_n consider_v with_o the_o mselue_n the_o fearful_a example_n record_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o such_o as_o have_v rash_o presume_v to_o profane_v the_o holy_a office_n of_o the_o church_n and_o how_o god_n have_v often_o visit_v this_o great_a sin_n with_o grievous_a judgment_n sometime_o with_o fire_n from_o heaven_n sometime_o the_o earth_n open_v her_o mouth_n sometime_o with_o sudden_a death_n and_o sometime_o with_o the_o most_o filthy_a disease_n of_o the_o leprosy_n whereby_o as_o by_o his_o voice_n from_o heaven_n he_o thunder_v down_o upon_o man_n disobedience_n and_o so_o ratify_v this_o law_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o vocation_n 〈◊〉_d call_v for_o ever_o 18._o corah_n dathan_n and_o abiram_n take_v upon_o they_o the_o priesthood_n without_o a_o calling_n fire_n from_o heaven_n come_v down_o consume_a corah_n and_o his_o company_n the_o earth_n also_o open_v and_o cover_v dathan_n and_o abiram_n that_o they_o be_v swallow_v up_o alive_a none_o of_o they_o die_v the_o common_a visitation_n of_o other_o man_n but_o god_n wrought_v a_o strange_a work_n upon_o they_o and_o alter_v the_o course_n of_o nature_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o parpetuall_a instruction_n and_o direction_n unto_o we_o to_o teach_v we_o not_o to_o pervert_v or_o evert_v that_o order_n which_o god_n have_v establish_v to_o continue_v in_o his_o church_n hitherto_o belong_v that_o which_o be_v write_v of_o vzzah_n 7_o who_o be_v smite_v with_o sudden_a and_o unexpected_a death_n only_o for_o that_o beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o his_o call_n he_o put_v forth_o his_o hand_n to_o hold_v up_o the_o ark_n which_o do_v shake_v and_o be_v ready_a to_o fall_v which_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o levite_n only_o to_o meddle_v withal_o although_o his_o intent_n and_o purpose_n be_v never_o so_o good_a so_o that_o if_o the_o unlawful_a intruder_n upon_o baptism_n pretend_v case_n of_o necessity_n here_o seem_v as_o great_a a_o necessity_n yea_o his_o mind_n and_o meaning_n be_v as_o good_a as_o they_o yet_o it_o displease_a god_n because_o it_o be_v do_v without_o his_o word_n and_o warrant_n so_o azariah_n be_v strike_v with_o leprosy_n that_o he_o be_v a_o leper_n to_o the_o day_n of_o his_o death_n for_o that_o not_o be_v content_a with_o his_o kingly_a office_n he_o will_v take_v upon_o he_o the_o priest_n office_n 5_o to_o burn_v incense_n unto_o the_o lord_n these_o worthy_a example_n of_o god_n most_o fevere_a judgement_n execute_v upon_o the_o breaker_n of_o this_o ordinance_n aught_o to_o strike_v such_o a_o fear_n into_o our_o heart_n that_o we_o suffer_v not_o the_o sacred_a function_n and_o office_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v profane_v and_o to_o teach_v we_o that_o every_o one_o meddle_v only_o with_o the_o approve_a duty_n of_o his_o own_o call_n and_o although_o god_n do_v not_o now_o thus_o execute_v judgement_n from_o heaven_n and_o work_v strange_a thing_n in_o the_o earth_n in_o extraordinary_a manner_n when_o his_o ordinance_n be_v break_v yet_o the_o sin_n be_v not_o thereby_o lessen_v nor_o the_o punishment_n mitagate_v nor_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n shorten_v but_o stretch_v out_o still_o though_o judgement_n according_a to_o desert_n be_v defer_v my_o rather_o the_o 13._o great_a wrath_n be_v reserve_v for_o his_o adversary_n to_o the_o great_a day_n of_o account_n when_o all_o flesh_n shall_v appear_v before_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glorious_a presence_n for_o if_o the_o prophaner_n of_o the_o sign_n 〈◊〉_d sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v not_o escape_v but_o be_v thus_o sharp_o and_o severe_o punish_v our_o sacrament_n establish_v by_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v not_o of_o less_o value_n 〈◊〉_d worthiness_n so_o that_o the_o contempt_n of_o they_o shall_v be_v visit_v with_o sore_a judgment_n and_o if_o god_n do_v strike_v with_o his_o revenge_a hand_n privateman_n when_o they_o sin_v in_o a_o abuse_n the_o sacrament_n and_o spare_v not_o king_n in_o the_o pride_n of_o their_o heart_n how_o shall_v woman_n stand_v a_o degree_n 〈◊〉_d off_o and_o bar_v from_o the_o office_n by_o a_o strong_a bolt_n enter_v into_o the_o house_n 10_o at_o a_o window_n and_o not_o be_v account_v as_o thief_n and_o robber_n so_o that_o we_o conclude_v that_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o call_n be_v as_o great_a as_o the_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o first_o outward_a part_n of_o baptism_n namely_o the_o minister_n chap._n 4._o of_o the_o second_o outward_a part_n of_o baptism_n the_o second_o outward_a part_n of_o baptism_n be_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n baptism_n which_o be_v as_o the_o form_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o eph._n 2_o 26._o christ_n love_v the_o church_n and_o give_v himself_o for_o it_o that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v it_o and_o cleanse_v it_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o water_n 19_o through_o the_o word_n
this_o also_o be_v express_o set_v down_o math._n 28._o go_v teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holyghost_n this_o both_o declare_v the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o promise_v christ_n with_o all_o his_o benefit_n for_o to_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n be_v to_o be_v make_v one_o of_o god_n family_n which_o be_v his_o church_n and_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o privilege_n thereof_o i_o his_o promise_n be_v contain_v under_o the_o commandment_n 19_o as_o we_o may_v see_v by_o sundry_a testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o gen._n 48._o jacob_n say_v the_o angel_n that_o have_v deliver_v i_o from_o all_o evil_a bless_v the_o child_n and_o let_v my_o name_n be_v name_v upon_o they_o and_o the_o name_n of_o my_o father_n abraham_n and_o isaac_n whereby_o he_o mean_v they_o shall_v be_v join_v to_o his_o family_n &_o account_v in_o the_o number_n of_o they_o now_o the_o use_n remain_v to_o be_v consider_v first_o hereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a what_o a_o solemn_a covenant_n and_o contract_n and_o what_o 1._o a_o near_a conjunction_n be_v make_v by_o the_o wash_n in_o baptism_n between_o god_n and_o the_o person_n baptize_v for_o god_n the_o father_n vouchsafe_v to_o receive_v they_o as_o his_o child_n into_o favour_n the_o son_n to_o redeem_v 〈◊〉_d the_o holyghost_n to_o purify_v and_o preserve_v they_o to_o comfort_v and_o regenerate_v they_o to_o protect_v and_o defend_v they_o from_o all_o evil_a this_o be_v the_o staff_n and_o stay_n of_o our_o hope_n and_o comfort_n second_o consider_v on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o the_o party_n thus_o 2._o baptize_v do_v promise_n and_o vow_n to_o acknowledge_v believe_v serve_v worship_n and_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o no_o other_o god_n but_o of_o the_o true_a god_n which_o be_v the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holyghost_n and_o consequent_o to_o renounce_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o fashion_n of_o the_o world_n &_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n baptism_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o solemn_a oath_n take_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o congregation_n whereby_o the_o person_n baptize_v bind_v himself_o whole_o to_o god_n three_o in_o person_n but_o one_o in_o substance_n indeed_o we_o deserve_v to_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o favour_n and_o family_n of_o god_n yet_o he_o vouchsafe_v to_o entertain_v we_o to_o receive_v we_o and_o to_o acknowledge_v we_o for_o his_o child_n therefore_o we_o must_v in_o every_o estate_n depend_v upon_o he_o honour_v he_o as_o our_o god_n serve_v he_o as_o our_o master_n obey_v he_o as_o our_o lord_n and_o look_v for_o salvation_n from_o he_o as_o from_o our_o redeemer_n again_o as_o we_o have_v be_v baptize_v not_o in_o the_o name_n of_o one_o person_n alone_o not_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n alone_o or_o of_o the_o son_n alone_o or_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n alone_o but_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n &_o of_o the_o holyghost_n so_o we_o must_v all_o believe_v 〈◊〉_d confess_v as_o a_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o the_o trinity_n in_o unity_n and_o unity_n in_o trinity_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v for_o albeit_o here_o be_v three_o reckon_v up_o as_o speak_v of_o many_o yet_o here_o be_v also_o mention_v their_o name_n as_o speak_v only_o of_o one_o not_o of_o their_o name_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o three_o person_n so_o many_o as_o deny_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v just_o to_o be_v condemn_v of_o falsehood_n and_o heresy_n such_o be_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o jew_n greek_n turk_n persian_n and_o in_o some_o sort_n the_o papist_n albeit_o in_o word_n these_o last_o acknowledge_v one_o god_n in_o three_o person_n the_o greek_a church_n at_o this_o day_n deny_v the_o godhead_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o turk_n and_o jew_n deny_v the_o deity_n both_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holyghost_n the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n more_o glorious_a in_o show_n but_o not_o much_o more_o sound_a in_o say_v have_v defile_v the_o whole_a trinity_n with_o their_o imagery_n and_o set_v up_o a_o false_a christ_n partly_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v god_n of_o himself_o and_o partly_o repeal_n all_o his_o office_n so_o that_o howsoever_o they_o profess_v he_o in_o word_n and_o leave_v he_o the_o name_n of_o a_o saviour_n yet_o they_o make_v a_o mock_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n and_o have_v turn_v christian_a religion_n into_o antichristian_a 〈◊〉_d wherefore_o as_o we_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o most_o worthy_a name_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n let_v we_o hold_v fast_o the_o true_a profession_n thereof_o and_o renounce_v all_o error_n and_o heresy_n oppugn_v our_o holy_a 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d we_o of_o the_o sweet_a comfort_n we_o have_v therein_o three_o be_v these_o word_n of_o institution_n baptise_v they_o into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n &_o of_o the_o holyghost_n 3._o the_o outward_a form_n of_o baptism_n then_o we_o hold_v that_o manner_n of_o baptise_v must_v be_v retain_v this_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v change_v no_o other_o aught_o to_o be_v use_v then_o this_o prescribe_v by_o christ_n our_o saviour_n we_o must_v not_o therefore_o let_v pass_v or_o leave_v out_o any_o of_o the_o three_o person_n in_o trinity_n as_o some_o heretic_n have_v do_v though_o we_o shall_v understand_v the_o other_o by_o name_v and_o speak_v of_o one_o if_o any_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n as_o act._n 2_o 38_o and_o ch._n 10_o 48_o and_o 19_o 5._o to_o this_o 〈◊〉_d i_o answer_v the_o apostle_n do_v not_o set_v down_o in_o those_o place_n the_o form_n of_o baptism_n answer_n or_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n but_o the_o substance_n and_o end_n which_o be_v to_o assure_v remission_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ._n they_o show_v not_o the_o form_n but_o the_o fruit_n not_o how_o it_o shall_v be_v minister_v but_o what_o spiritual_a grace_n be_v signify_v thereby_o for_o why_o shall_v the_o disciple_n change_v the_o ordinance_n of_o their_o master_n who_o deliver_v nothing_o to_o the_o church_n but_o what_o 23_o they_o receive_v of_o the_o lord_n again_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o apostle_n 2_o baptize_v in_o this_o form_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o act._n 10_o 47._o can_v any_o forbid_v water_n that_o these_o shall_v not_o be_v baptize_v which_o have_v receive_v the_o holy-ghost_n as_o well_o as_o we_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v these_o have_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holyghost_n therefore_o they_o may_v be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holyghost_n and_o more_o plain_o act._n 19_o when_o the_o diseiple_n have_v answer_v paul_n that_o they_o know_v not_o whether_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a ghost_n he_o say_v unto_o what_o be_v you_o then_o baptize_v whereby_o he_o show_v it_o be_v the_o manner_n and_o custom_n to_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o holyghost_n and_o consequent_o of_o the_o whole_a trinity_n the_o evangelist_n also_o teach_v that_o at_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holyghost_n be_v present_a and_o as_o he_o baptize_v with_o the_o same_o matter_n why_o shall_v we_o imagine_v he_o observe_v not_o the_o same_o form_n that_o christ_n eommaund_v express_o to_o his_o apostle_n nay_o see_v in_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n we_o have_v prove_v there_o be_v the_o same_o promise_n the_o same_o grace_n the_o same_o virtue_n the_o same_o sign_n the_o same_o signification_n which_o be_v in_o the_o baptism_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v before_o why_o shall_v we_o only_o doubt_v of_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n wherefore_o we_o conclude_v that_o the_o apostle_n will_v not_o alter_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o direct-and_a express_a word_n of_o their_o lord_n and_o master_n 19_o prescribe_v math._n 28_o where_o he_o charge_v they_o both_o what_o to_o preach_v and_o how_o to_o baptize_v for_o as_o he_o enjoin_v they_o to_o teach_v the_o nation_n to_o observe_v whatsoever_o he_o command_v they_o so_o he_o will_v they_o to_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holyghost_n and_o as_o they_o alter_v nothing_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o teach_v no_o more_o do_v they_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o baptise_v consider_v that_o as_o the_o doctrine_n they_o preach_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n so_o the_o sacrament_n they_o deliver_v be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o god_n and_o they_o have_v no_o more_o leave_n in_o the_o one_o than_o liberty_n in_o the_o
sacrament_n be_v confute_v and_o condemn_v as_o their_o cream_n their_o taper_n their_o cross_n their_o censor_n their_o salt_n their_o spittle_n their_o holy-water_n their_o exorcisinge_n and_o conjuration_n have_v also_o a_o opinion_n of_o salvation_n and_o worship_n annex_v unto_o they_o these_o man_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o base_a and_o contemptible_a thing_n to_o baptize_v with_o water_n only_o according_a to_o christ_n commandment_n have_v bring_v in_o a_o new_a word_n and_o new_a element_n 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v new_a dross_n and_o new_a filth_n into_o the_o church_n and_o into_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n as_o salt_n that_o we_o may_v be_v season_v with_o wisdom_n and_o be_v keep_v from_o purrify_v in_o sin_n oil_n that_o we_o may_v be_v safe_a from_o evil_a suggestion_n spittle_n that_o our_o ear_n may_v be_v opeto_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o our_o nostril_n to_o discern_v the_o smell_n of_o good_a and_o evil_n cross_n that_o all_o our_o sense_n may_v be_v defend_v against_o the_o evil_a spirit_n true_a it_o be_v if_o all_o the_o other_o part_n and_o action_n be_v observe_v these_o invention_n and_o addition_n which_o be_v so_o many_o abuse_n make_v not_o baptism_n void_a neither_o bring_v a_o nullity_n thereof_o notwithstanding_o these_o beggarly_a ceremony_n as_o they_o be_v destitute_a of_o the_o testimony_n and_o aprobation_n of_o the_o first_o and_o ancient_a church_n so_o they_o corrupt_v the_o pure_a simple_a and_o sincere_a institution_n of_o christ_n none_o be_v use_v when_o christ_n be_v baptize_v neither_o give_v he_o any_o such_o thing_n in_o charge_n to_o his_o apostle_n neither_o be_v they_o in_o use_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n neither_o do_v they_o deliver_v they_o to_o the_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n which_o they_o ordain_v in_o every_o city_n for_o peter_n say_v 47_o can_v any_o man_n forbid_v water_n that_o these_o shall_v not_o be_v baptize_v he_o call_v not_o for_o oil_n salt_n spittle_n cream_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n but_o only_o for_o plain_a common_a and_o ordinary_a water_n thus_o in_o one_o sacra_fw-la they_o find_v many_o sacrament_n and_o invent_v tip_n shadow_n similitude_n and_o signification_n in_o the_o immediate_a service_n of_o god_n whereas_o we_o have_v the_o body_n itself_o that_o be_v christ_n already_o they_o make_v these_o outward_a thing_n able_a to_o give_v grace_n power_n and_o strength_n against_o the_o devil_n but_o the_o apostle_n teach_v that_o the_o weapon_n of_o our_o warfare_n be_v not_o carnal_a 12._o they_o be_v spiritual_a that_o must_v defend_v we_o from_o evil_a if_o they_o refer_v all_o this_o trash_n and_o trumpery_n not_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacram_fw-la but_o 37_o to_o order_n and_o comeliness_n do_v they_o not_o thereby_o blasphemous_o accuse_v the_o baptism_n of_o john_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n of_o uncomeliness_n and_o disorder_n whereas_o the_o comeliness_n and_o dignity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o apostle_n nothing_o be_v more_o comely_a decent_a and_o orderly_o then_o that_o which_o christ_n command_v and_o allow_v nothing_o be_v more_o uncomely_a or_o unseemly_a then_o that_o which_o man_n invent_v in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n thereby_o invert_v and_o pervert_v the_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o god_n three_o if_o wash_v with_o water_n be_v a_o outward_a part_n of_o baptism_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o flesh_n but_o teach_v not_o to_o the_o conscience_n which_o touch_v the_o body_n but_o cleanse_v not_o the_o soul_n then_o the_o bare_a want_n of_o external_a purification_n can_v bring_v the_o danger_n of_o eternal_a condemnation_n wherefore_o child_n die_v without_o baptism_n be_v not_o reject_v because_o they_o want_v baptism_n for_o child_n that_o be_v elect_v be_v save_v though_o they_o die_v before_o baptism_n and_o they_o that_o be_v not_o elect_v be_v condemn_v though_o they_o be_v baptize_v for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o want_n but_o the_o continual_a contempt_n thereof_o that_o be_v damnable_a circumcision_n be_v as_o necessary_a to_o the_o jew_n as_o baptism_n be_v unto_o us._n but_o all_o do_v not_o perish_v circumcision_n that_o die_v uncircumcised_a therefore_o all_o perish_v not_o that_o die_v unbaptise_v and_o if_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o child_n do_v depend_v upon_o the_o outward_a sacrament_n it_o have_v be_v a_o hard_a thing_n in_o the_o lord_n who_o will_v 23_o not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n to_o have_v require_v the_o defer_v of_o it_o one_o week_n one_o day_n one_o hour_n one_o minute_n we_o see_v in_o joshuae_fw-la 5_o it_o be_v omit_v 40._o year_n while_o they_o be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n through_o their_o continual_a journey_n and_o uncertain_a abode_n in_o every_o place_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a cruel_a and_o bloody_a conclusion_n to_o determine_v thereupon_o that_o whosoever_o among_o they_o during_o that_o time_n die_v before_o he_o be_v circumcise_v be_v damn_v when_o david_n child_n die_v the_o seven_o day_n which_o be_v before_o he_o can_v be_v circumcise_v circumcision_n be_v limit_v 3_o to_o the_o 8._o day_n he_o do_v not_o cry_v out_o pitiful_o it_o be_v damn_v it_o be_v damn_v but_o arise_v from_o the_o earth_n wash_v himself_o anoint_v his_o body_n change_v his_o 4_o apparel_n refresh_v himself_o cheer_v his_o wife_n come_v into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n worship_v god_n praise_v he_o for_o all_o his_o do_n 23_o make_v his_o servant_n that_o attend_v on_o he_o wonder_n at_o his_o comfortable_a behaviour_n and_o say_v he_o shall_v go_v to_o his_o child_n but_o not_o his_o child_n return_v to_o he_o again_o but_o if_o he_o have_v think_v all_o condemn_v that_o die_v uncircumcised_a his_o lamentation_n will_v have_v exceed_v for_o he_o have_v cause_n to_o have_v sorrow_v more_o after_o his_o death_n than_o he_o do_v in_o the_o child_n sickness_n and_o if_o circumcision_n have_v be_v of_o such_o absolute_a necessity_n he_o may_v have_v say_v the_o child_n be_v now_o dead_a why_o shall_v i_o not_o fast_o why_o shall_v i_o not_o weep_v why_o shall_v i_o not_o afflict_v my_o soul_n see_v i_o can_v bring_v he_o again_o or_o restore_v he_o to_o life_n to_o be_v circumcise_v but_o because_o he_o sorrow_v not_o as_o one_o without_o hope_n and_o he_o 〈◊〉_d not_o on_o this_o or_o any_o like_a manner_n it_o appear_v that_o his_o faith_n apprehend_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o child_n and_o fear_v not_o his_o damnation_n through_o untimely_a want_n of_o the_o outward_a sacrament_n now_o god_n be_v not_o straight_a and_o hard_a to_o we_o under_o the_o gospel_n than_o he_o be_v to_o the_o israelite_n under_o the_o law_n he_o be_v no_o less_o able_a and_o willing_a to_o save_v now_o without_o baptism_n then_o in_o those_o day_n he_o be_v without_o circumcision_n again_o how_o foolish_a vain_a and_o unreasonable_a a_o thing_n be_v it_o to_o put_v life_n and_o death_n salvation_n and_o damnation_n into_o the_o hand_n and_o liberty_n of_o mortal_a man_n as_o of_o the_o parent_n that_o shall_v bring_v they_o or_o of_o the_o minister_n that_o shall_v baptize_v they_o or_o of_o other_o that_o perform_v other_o duty_n unto_o they_o whereas_o eternal_a life_n and_o salvation_n stand_v sure_a and_o settle_a upon_o the_o brazen_a pillar_n of_o god_n election_n who_o know_v 15_o who_o be_v his_o and_o upon_o his_o merciful_a promise_n in_o his_o covenant_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o lust_n and_o pleasure_n of_o any_o man_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o jacob_n of_o who_o god_n say_v i_o have_v love_v he_o before_o he_o be_v circumcise_v nay_o before_o he_o be_v 2_o bear_v or_o have_v do_v either_o good_a or_o evil_n furthermore_o we_o have_v show_v before_o 〈◊〉_d that_o many_o believe_v repent_v and_o have_v the_o holyghost_n before_o they_o be_v baptize_v yea_o the_o thief_n upon_o the_o cross_n repent_v of_o his_o sin_n and_o believe_v in_o christ_n yet_o be_v never_o baptize_v notwithstanding_o he_o be_v receive_v to_o mercy_n and_o certain_o save_v as_o christ_n say_v 43_o this_o day_n shall_v thou_o be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n beside_o there_o be_v no_o great_a necessity_n of_o baptism_n then_o of_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o we_o may_v be_v save_v without_o the_o lord_n supper_n therefore_o also_o without_o baptism_n last_o if_o all_o person_n die_v without_o baptism_n be_v condemn_v then_o infinite_a multitude_n of_o child_n shall_v or_o may_v perish_v and_o be_v damn_v without_o their_o own_o fault_n through_o the_o carelessness_n of_o other_o but_o none_o perish_v without_o their_o own_o fault_n therefore_o all_o die_a without_o baptism_n be_v not_o condemn_v to_o these_o we_o may_v 〈◊〉_d the_o testimony_n and_o
confession_n of_o the_o adversary_n which_o be_v strong_a against_o themselves_o to_o who_o we_o may_v say_v as_o christ_n sometime_o do_v to_o that_o slothful_a person_n 22_o thou_o evil_a servant_n out_o of_o thy_o own_o mouth_n will_v i_o judge_v thou_o these_o make_v three_o sort_n of_o baptism_n of_o water_n of_o blood_n of_o the_o spirit_n whereby_o they_o consesle_a that_o the_o want_n of_o baptise_v with_o water_n be_v not_o damnable_a in_o all_o see_v that_o want_n may_v be_v supply_v either_o with_o shed_v of_o their_o blood_n for_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o truth_n or_o by_o spiritual_a regeneration_n and_o engraft_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o conclude_v do_v we_o desire_v the_o custom_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o in_o thessalia_n 26_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n be_v celebrate_v but_o once_o in_o the_o year_n namely_o at_o easter_n in_o other_o place_n thrice_o in_o the_o year_n and_o sometime_o not_o until_o the_o hour_n of_o their_o death_n when_o they_o be_v go_v the_o way_n of_o all_o flesh_n constantine_n the_o great_a be_v the_o first_o christian_n emperor_n yet_o be_v he_o not_o baptize_v till_o 12_o the_o time_n of_o his_o death_n and_o valentinianus_n a_o christian_n emperor_n die_v without_o baptism_n yet_o do_v ambrose_n give_v he_o his_o due_a commendation_n 〈◊〉_d and_o doubt_v nothing_o of_o his_o salvation_n shall_v we_o do_v these_o good_a man_n these_o worthy_a emperor_n these_o godly_a christian_n this_o wrong_v as_o to_o think_v they_o be_v damn_v who_o be_v the_o chief_a pillar_n and_o protector_n of_o the_o catholic_n religion_n or_o if_o the_o church_n above_o mention_v have_v hold_v this_o hard_a opinion_n that_o the_o want_n of_o baptism_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o reprobation_n will_v they_o have_v defer_v it_o in_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n whereby_o sometime_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d or_o administer_v it_o at_o certain_a time_n only_o of_o the_o year_n true_a it_o be_v that_o custom_n be_v not_o to_o be_v follow_v neither_o the_o negligence_n of_o those_o bishop_n to_o be_v allow_v but_o it_o teach_v thus_o much_o that_o in_o de_fw-mi fer_v baptism_n they_o differ_v in_o judgement_n from_o the_o new_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o concur_v in_o opinion_n with_o the_o reform_a church_n for_o which_o cause_v their_o practice_n be_v allege_v the_o reason_n use_v to_o maintain_v the_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o this_o sacrament_n to_o salvation_n be_v weak_a and_o not_o worth_a the_o answer_n first_o they_o object_v answer_n the_o threaten_v annex_v to_o circumcision_n the_o uncircumcised_a male_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o his_o people_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o god_n command_v infant_n to_o be_v circumcise_v the_o eight_o day_n before_o which_o time_n they_o be_v forbid_v to_o circumcise_v wherefore_o infant_n that_o die_v before_o the_o 8._o day_n be_v not_o bind_v and_o oblige_v by_o this_o law_n and_o see_v there_o 13_o can_v be_v no_o transgression_n where_o there_o be_v no_o law_n they_o be_v not_o damn_v because_o they_o be_v uncircumcife_v see_v god_n call_v many_o out_o of_o this_o life_n before_o they_o be_v capable_a of_o this_o sacrament_n again_o the_o commination_n and_o threaten_a be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v general_o of_o all_o but_o of_o such_o as_o be_v grow_v up_o not_o of_o child_n but_o of_o man_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o reason_n for_o he_o have_v break_v my_o covenant_n this_o can_v be_v apply_v to_o infant_n genes_z who_o albeit_o they_o have_v not_o actual_a faith_n yet_o can_v be_v say_v to_o contemn_v grace_n to_o refuse_v the_o covenant_n to_o reject_v the_o promise_n or_o to_o lie_v in_o infidelity_n &_o hardness_n of_o hart_n wherefore_o it_o belong_v unto_o those_o only_a that_o be_v grow_v up_o and_o come_v to_o year_n shall_v approve_v the_o negligence_n of_o their_o parent_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v circumcise_v now_o as_o to_o peter_n sai_v thou_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d never_o wash_v my_o foot_n christ_n answer_v if_o i_o wash_v thou_o not_o thou_o have_v no_o part_n in_o i_o so_o to_o the_o israelite_n that_o shall_v have_v say_v i_o will_v never_o be_v circumcise_v this_o threaten_a might_n fit_o be_v apply_v if_o thou_o will_v not_o be_v circumcise_v thou_o have_v no_o part_n in_o god_n no_o portion_n in_o his_o blessing_n no_o assurance_n of_o his_o promise_n in_o this_o life_n or_o of_o his_o kingdom_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v last_o to_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o people_n do_v not_o signify_v to_o be_v condemn_v for_o even_o the_o negligence_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v pardonable_a where_o repentance_n follow_v as_o we_o see_v of_o such_o as_o come_v unuerent_o and_o unworthy_o to_o the_o lord_n supper_n among_o the_o corinthian_n 31._o who_o be_v punish_v with_o disease_n and_o death_n itself_o yet_o the_o soul_n no_o doubt_n be_v save_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n sometime_o therefore_o that_o phrase_n of_o speak_v signify_v temporal_a judgement_n of_o god_n on_o man_n and_o their_o family_n 24_o for_o their_o wickedness_n sometime_o it_o signify_v the_o magistrate_n justice_n inflict_v on_o malefactor_n 9_o who_o bear_v not_o the_o sword_n in_o vain_a which_o be_v expound_v afterward_o thou_o shall_v sure_o kill_v he_o sometime_o it_o signify_v to_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n 19_o which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o high_a and_o dreadful_a censure_n or_o excommunication_n whosoever_o eat_v leaven_a bread_n from_o the_o first_o day_n until_o the_o seven_o day_n that_o person_n shall_v be_v out_o off_o from_o israel_n the_o interpretation_n of_o which_o word_n be_v add_v verse_n 19_o that_o person_n shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o congregation_n of_o israel_n so_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1_o cor._n 5._o he_o which_o have_v do_v this_o thing_n shall_v be_v 〈◊〉_d put_v from_o among_o you_o that_o be_v from_o your_o company_n and_o fellowship_n as_o verse_n 13._o put_v away_o from_o among_o yourselves_o that_o wicked_a man_n thus_o we_o be_v to_o understande_v the_o threaten_n in_o this_o place_n that_o such_o as_o contemn_v circumcision_n either_o themselves_o or_o allow_v the_o same_o contempt_n and_o negligence_n of_o other_o shall_v no_o long_o be_v reckon_v and_o repute_v among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n but_o be_v separate_v from_o they_o again_o 5_o they_o object_n john_n 3._o unless_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v of_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n he_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n therefore_o 2._o say_v they_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v baptize_v this_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o 4_o bellarmine_n and_o answer_n of_o other_o i_o answer_v first_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a in_o this_o place_n by_o water_n to_o understande_v material_a water_n but_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n purge_v and_o clensinge_v as_o water_n do_v which_o interpretation_n may_v be_v gather_v by_o conference_n of_o a_o like_a place_n math_n 3_o 11._o he_o shall_v baptise_v 11_o with_o the_o holy-ghost_n and_o with_o fire_n that_o be_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v fire_n lightning_z our_o heart_n with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n inflame_v they_o with_o his_o love_n and_o purge_v they_o from_o evil_a affection_n so_o when_o we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v bear_v again_o by_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n he_o mean_v by_o the_o spirit_n show_v forth_o in_o we_o the_o force_n power_n and_o property_n of_o water_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v we_o be_v bear_v of_o water_n which_o be_v the_o spirit_n 11_o as_o joh._n 7_o 38_o 39_o again_o if_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o water_n in_o baptism_n it_o must_v be_v understand_v according_a to_o alike_o 53_o sentence_n joh._n 6._o unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o which_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o such_o as_o be_v of_o year_n and_o grow_v in_o age_n and_o thus_o innocentius_n the_o 3._o in_o the_o 3_o decree_n expound_v it_o so_o do_v peter_n lombard_n 4_o master_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d so_o then_o if_o they_o will_v be_v try_v either_o by_o their_o own_o pope_n which_o be_v their_o holy_a father_n or_o by_o peter_n lombard_n which_o be_v their_o grand-maister_n this_o place_n can_v be_v enforce_v against_o infant_n that_o die_v before_o they_o be_v baptize_v but_o must_v be_v refer_v to_o man_n of_o great_a year_n we_o reason_v not_o thus_o far_o to_o justify_v and_o allow_v the_o sluggishness_n and_o neglect_n of_o careless_a parent_n under_o colour_n and_o pretence_n of_o this_o that_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o child_n depend_v not_o upon_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o to_o show_v that_o if_o it_o can_v be_v obtain_v
here_o baptize_v in_o these_o piaces_n but_o do_v we_o answ_n read_v that_o any_o be_v exclude_v and_o see_v the_o scripture_n express_v all_o the_o household_n who_o shall_v dare_v to_o debar_v infant_n be_v not_o they_o a_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o house_n beside_o if_o the_o baptism_n of_o child_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v because_o it_o be_v not_o name_v and_o express_v we_o may_v with_o as_o good_a reason_n shut_v out_o woman_n from_o the_o lord_n supper_n if_o any_o be_v as_o great_a a_o enemy_n to_o the_o communicate_v of_o woman_n as_o to_o the_o baptisinge_v of_o child_n seeinge_v we_o do_v not_o express_o read_v that_o they_o be_v not_o admit_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n wherefore_o child_n baptism_n be_v no_o human_a tradition_n no_o apishimitation_n no_o ancient_a corruption_n of_o this_o sacrament_n but_o be_v ground_v on_o the_o unblameable_a practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o have_v the_o force_n and_o strength_n of_o a_o commandment_n three_o christ_n by_o his_o own_o example_n allow_v and_o approve_v their_o baptism_n as_o we_o see_v mar._n 10_o when_o the_o disciple_n rebuke_v those_o that_o bring_v little_a chilren_n to_o christ_n that_o he_o may_v touch_v they_o he_o say_v 15_o suffer_v little_a child_n to_o come_v unto_o i_o &_o forbid_v they_o not_o for_o of_o such_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o who_o soever_o shall_v not_o receive_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n as_o a_o little_a child_n he_o shall_v not_o enter_v therein_o where_o we_o be_v to_o observe_v that_o he_o say_v not_o of_o these_o only_a be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o of_o such_o like_a infant_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o all_o age_n and_o time_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o act_n of_o christ_n embrace_v the_o infant_n bring_v unto_o he_o and_o sharp_o rebuke_v his_o disciple_n thatforbad_v they_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o he_o command_v child_n to_o be_v bring_v unto_o he_o and_o add_v a_o reason_n to_o such_o belong_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n if_o any_o object_n it_o be_v say_v he_o embrace_v they_o it_o be_v not_o say_v he_o baptize_v they_o or_o if_o object_n any_o reply_n and_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o agreement_n and_o resemblance_n between_o baptise_v and_o embrace_v i_o answer_v he_o answer_n lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o they_o he_o pray_v for_o they_o he_o commend_v they_o to_o his_o father_n and_o say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v they_o all_o this_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o then_o to_o give_v they_o the_o outward_a sign_n for_o if_o reason_n require_v they_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o christ_n why_o shall_v they_o not_o be_v receive_v to_o baptism_n which_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n if_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n belong_v to_o they_o why_o shall_v the_o sign_n be_v deny_v unto_o they_o whereby_o the_o door_n of_o entrance_n into_o the_o church_n be_v open_v why_o shall_v we_o drive_v they_o away_o from_o christ_n who_o christ_n call_v unto_o himself_o neither_o let_v any_o say_v these_o child_n be_v of_o year_n and_o grow_v up_o in_o age_n able_a of_o themselves_o to_o come_v and_o repair_v to_o christ_n for_o the_o euangeliste_n use_v such_o word_n as_o signify_v such_o young_a infant_n as_o be_v babe_n and_o hang_v upon_o their_o mother_n breast_n 44_o therefore_o by_o come_v in_o this_o place_n he_o mean_v to_o draw_v near_o or_o to_o have_v excess_n again_o they_o be_v such_o as_o be_v bring_v to_o christ_n by_o 〈◊〉_d other_o luk._n 18_o 15_o they_o be_v carry_v in_o their_o arm_n they_o walk_v not_o on_o their_o foot_n and_o christ_n also_o take_v they_o in_o his_o own_o arm_n beside_o heerto_o agree_v the_o practice_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o no_o teacher_n so_o profound_a no_o doctor_n so_o learned_a no_o writer_n so_o ancient_a which_o do_v not_o refer_v the_o beginning_n hereof_o to_o the_o animae_fw-la precise_a time_n of_o the_o apostle_n let_v the_o anabaptist_n and_o adversary_n of_o this_o truth_n tell_v we_o who_o be_v the_o first_o author_n and_o inventor_n of_o child_n baptism_n if_o they_o refer_v it_o not_o to_o christ_n who_o first_o administer_v it_o what_o be_v his_o name_n if_o they_o cancel_v let_v they_o not_o hide_v it_o let_v they_o declare_v the_o time_n when_o it_o begin_v let_v they_o show_v the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v devise_v let_v they_o name_v the_o child_n first_o baptize_v and_o in_o what_o assembly_n or_o church_n it_o be_v if_o they_o can_v do_v these_o or_o any_o of_o they_o let_v they_o acknowledge_v the_o baptism_n of_o child_n to_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o man_n warrant_v both_o by_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n moreover_o if_o there_o be_v no_o writer_n to_o avouch_v this_o ancient_a truth_n yet_o be_v it_o in_o itself_o very_o right_a and_o reasonable_a for_o do_v we_o not_o see_v and_o behold_v daily_o very_a babe_n and_o 〈◊〉_d man_n oftentimes_o among_o man_n admit_v to_o their_o inheritance_n have_v they_o not_o livery_n and_o season_n of_o land_n and_o have_v they_o not_o the_o wand_n or_o turf_n take_v in_o their_o hand_n according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d or_o custom_n of_o the_o manor_n of_o which_o they_o hold_v they_o know_v not_o what_o be_v do_v they_o perceive_v nothing_o what_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o manor_n or_o steward_n speak_v unto_o they_o yet_o we_o see_v among_o the_o wise_a man_n in_o this_o world_n this_o be_v not_o think_v foolish_a neither_o be_v such_o a_o admission_n call_v into_o question_n but_o they_o be_v afterward_o instruct_v what_o they_o have_v do_v what_o they_o have_v undertak_v n_o and_o take_v upon_o they_o what_o service_n and_o duty_n they_o owe_v what_o their_o lord_n require_v of_o they_o thus_o they_o be_v admit_v in_o their_o infancy_n to_o a_o temporal_a inheritance_n and_o possession_n this_o they_o hold_v to_o the_o end_n of_o their_o life_n and_o of_o the_o validity_n of_o such_o entrance_n no_o tenant_n make_v doubt_v why_o then_o shall_v it_o seem_v unreasonable_a to_o give_v they_o baptism_n the_o sign_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v bear_v heir_n of_o the_o promise_n that_o after_o they_o come_v to_o discretion_n they_o may_v make_v use_n of_o it_o as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n they_o shall_v understand_v afterward_o that_o which_o they_o understand_v not_o for_o the_o present_a and_o yet_o if_o it_o please_v god_n to_o take_v they_o in_o mercy_n to_o himself_o from_o the_o misery_n of_o the_o world_n before_o they_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o their_o baptism_n he_o work_v extraordinaty_o by_o way_n best_o know_v to_o himself_o the_o force_n of_o their_o baptism_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o seal_v up_o their_o engraft_v into_o christ_n i_o esus_fw-la if_o then_o child_n have_v the_o white_a wand_n deliver_v unto_o they_o to_o assure_v they_o of_o the_o inheritance_n which_o they_o hold_v let_v none_o deny_v unto_o they_o the_o partakinge_a of_o this_o sacrament_n whereby_o they_o be_v assure_v of_o a_o eternal_a inheritance_n howsoever_o for_o the_o present_a time_n they_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o last_o the_o privilege_n and_o prerogative_n of_o child_n be_v no_o less_o than_o those_o of_o elder_a year_n for_o infant_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n body_n they_o be_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o heavenly_a father_n they_o be_v inheritor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n they_o be_v redeem_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o engraft_a into_o his_o body_n why_o then_o shall_v they_o not_o bear_v the_o mark_n of_o christ_n see_v they_o be_v a_o principal_a part_n of_o his_o possession_n if_o they_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o household_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v entrance_n into_o the_o house_n if_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o city_n of_o god_n who_o shall_v dare_v to_o shut_v the_o gate_n against_o they_o or_o if_o they_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n who_o shall_v presume_v to_o keep_v they_o from_o the_o sheepe-folde_n or_o if_o they_o be_v sound_a member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n who_o shall_v cut_v they_o off_o as_o rot_a member_n wherefore_o then_o 14._o shall_v they_o not_o receive_v the_o seal_n whereby_o the_o promise_n be_v confirm_v unto_o they_o see_v they_o have_v the_o promise_n itself_o of_o salvation_n why_o shall_v they_o not_o be_v pattaker_n of_o the_o outward_a sign_n xix14_n see_v they_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v why_o shall_v they_o be_v put_v back_o from_o the_o figure_n see_v they_o have_v the_o truth_n itself_o why_o shall_v they_o not_o be_v
be_v the_o sacra_fw-la of_o repentance_n and_o faith_n though_o neither_o of_o these_o be_v in_o infancy_n yet_o they_o be_v baptize_v to_o the_o repentance_n and_o faith_n to_o come_v which_o albeit_o they_o be_v not_o actual_o form_v in_o they_o yet_o by_o the_o fruit_n afterward_o they_o shall_v appear_v to_o be_v in_o they_o last_o if_o baptism_n shall_v be_v give_v only_o to_o those_o that_o true_o believe_v it_o shall_v likewise_o be_v deny_v to_o such_o as_o be_v of_o understanding_n for_o we_o be_v able_a to_o pronounce_v of_o these_o that_o they_o do_v true_o believe_v and_o certain_o apprehend_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n wherefore_o if_o infant_n be_v not_o to_o be_v baptize_v because_o they_o have_v not_o faith_n and_o want_n repentance_n neither_o be_v they_o of_o sufficient_a age_n to_o be_v baptize_v of_o who_o it_o can_v be_v direct_o and_o undoubted_o say_v they_o do_v believe_v simon_n the_o sorcerer_n mention_v 20_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v baptize_v and_o yet_o remain_v a_o hypocrite_n if_o they_o say_v profession_n of_o faith_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n i_o answer_v our_o saviour_n speak_v not_o of_o a_o bare_a profession_n of_o faith_n when_o he_o say_v he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v for_o then_o all_o that_o profess_v faith_n shall_v receive_v 9_o the_o reward_n of_o their_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o saluationof_n their_o soul_n again_o profession_n of_o faith_n be_v for_o such_o as_o be_v capable_a of_o it_o which_o agree_v not_o to_o the_o age_n of_o infant_n as_o they_o can_v deny_v the_o faith_n before_o man_n which_o they_o have_v not_o acknowledge_v no_o more_o can_v they_o confess_v the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n which_o they_o never_o learn_v now_o to_o be_v bear_v in_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o covenant_n be_v infant_n in_o place_n and_o stead_n of_o a_o actual_a confession_n and_o real_a profession_n such_o as_o be_v grow_v up_o must_v believe_v with_o the_o heart_n 〈◊〉_d and_o confess_v with_o the_o mouth_n the_o gospel_n of_o salvation_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o other_o to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o such_o as_o have_v confess_v the_o faith_n four_o they_o object_n in_o this_o manner_n baptism_n be_v give_v for_o 4._o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o infant_n have_v not_o sin_v they_o therefore_o can_v be_v baptize_v i_o answer_v infant_n commit_v not_o actual_a answer_n sin_n yet_o be_v guilty_a of_o original_a sin_n they_o want_v inherent_a righteousness_n they_o have_v a_o proneness_n to_o all_o evil_a their_o whole_a nature_n be_v corrupt_v be_v in_o the_o seed_n of_o adam_n albeit_o therefore_o infant_n have_v not_o finned_a after_o the_o similitude_n of_o adam_n transgression_n in_o their_o own_o person_n yet_o they_o have_v sin_v in_o he_o and_o in_o his_o loin_n in_o who_o all_o be_v dead_a this_o the_o holy_a man_n 4_o teach_v job._n 14._o who_o can_v bring_v a_o clean_a thing_n out_o of_o filthiness_n there_o be_v not_o one_o likewise_o the_o prophet_n 19_o david_n confess_v this_o truth_n psal._n 51._o behold_v i_o be_v bear_v in_o iniquity_n and_o in_o sin_n my_o mother_n conceive_v i_o so_o the_o apostle_n paul_n rom._n 5._o death_n reign_v from_o adam_n to_o moses_n even_o over_o they_o also_o that_o sin_v not_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o transgression_n of_o adam_n which_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o he_o that_o be_v to_o oome_n for_o as_o by_o one_o man_n disobedience_n many_o be_v make_v sinner_n so_o by_o the_o obedience_n of_o one_o shall_v many_o be_v make_v righteous_a wherefore_o such_o as_o hold_v infant_n without_o all_o guilt_n of_o sin_n never_o know_v the_o greatness_n of_o adam_n fall_n of_o god_n justice_n of_o man_n misery_n and_o of_o christ_n endless_a mercy_n last_o they_o object_n that_o christ_n himself_o be_v not_o baptize_v 5._o until_o 30_o year_n of_o age_n i_o answer_v no_o more_o do_v he_o preach_v answer_v before_o he_o be_v thirty_o yet_o hence_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o none_o ought_v to_o enter_v that_o call_n before_o that_o age_n true_a it_o be_v he_o that_o desire_v that_o worthy_a office_n must_v be_v no_o new_a plant_n no_o young_a scholar_n none_o late_o come_v to_o the_o profession_n and_o gather_v immediate_o from_o heathenish_a religion_n to_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o the_o office_n of_o teach_v be_v not_o tie_v to_o 30_o year_n the_o age_n may_v be_v less_o if_o the_o gift_n be_v great_a and_o fit_a for_o that_o call_n again_o christ_n stand_v not_o in_o need_n to_o be_v baptize_v in_o respect_n of_o himself_o be_v without_o original_n or_o actual_a sin_n to_o he_o wash_v away_o and_o therefore_o john_n at_o the_o first_o put_v he_o back_o 15_o yet_o he_o will_v be_v baptize_v for_o our_o sake_n to_o fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n to_o sanctify_v our_o baptism_n in_o himself_o and_o that_o thereby_o we_o may_v know_v he_o be_v install_v into_o his_o osfice_n but_o we_o stand_v in_o need_n to_o be_v baptize_v to_o seal_v up_o the_o wash_n away_o of_o our_o sin_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n in_o this_o respect_n between_o chrift_n and_o us._n beside_o the_o evangelist_n do_v testify_v that_o albeit_o our_o saviour_n be_v baptize_v at_o thirty_o year_n of_o age_n yet_o he_o be_v circumcise_v at_o 8._o day_n old_a now_o we_o have_v prove_v before_o that_o the_o same_o which_o circumcision_n be_v to_o the_o jew_n baptism_n be_v to_o all_o christian_n if_o then_o he_o in_o his_o infancy_n be_v circumcise_v than_o child_n in_o their_o in_o fancy_n may_v be_v baptize_v and_o be_v not_o command_v to_o wait_v thirty_o year_n for_o baptism_n be_v our_o circumcision_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v but_o christ_n in_o his_o infancy_n be_v circumcise_v 21_o when_o the_o eight_o day_n be_v accomplish_v therefore_o child_n in_o their_o infancy_n may_v be_v baptize_v furthermore_o baptism_n be_v not_o hitherto_o as_o yet_o in_o use_n it_o be_v not_o command_v to_o be_v use_v when_o he_o be_v a_o child_n and_o therefore_o he_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v baptize_v unless_o we_o will_v imagine_v he_o may_v be_v baptize_v before_o baptism_n be_v so_o that_o we_o see_v as_o he_o will_v not_o have_v his_o circumcision_n defer_v one_o day_n beyond_o the_o time_n appoint_v so_o he_o be_v present_o baptize_v so_o soon_o as_o baptism_n be_v institute_v of_o god_n and_o administer_v by_o john_n five_o we_o be_v no_o more_o tie_v to_o this_o circumstance_n of_o time_n in_o christ_n baptism_n than_o we_o be_v to_o other_o circumstance_n of_o time_n place_n and_o person_n in_o the_o supper_n he_o minister_v it_o in_o a_o upper_a chamber_n and_o before_o his_o passion_n we_o in_o church_n before_o dinner_n &_o after_o his_o resurrection_n last_o when_o the_o time_n appoint_v come_v that_o the_o promise_a saviour_n and_o redeemer_n of_o mankind_n shall_v manifest_v himself_o to_o the_o world_n than_o he_o show_v himself_o open_o than_o he_o come_v to_o the_o preach_v &_o baptism_n of_o john_n &_o begin_v to_o publish_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o salvation_n 15_o and_o to_o exhort_v man_n to_o repent_v &_o believe_v the_o gospel_n these_o be_v the_o chief_a objection_n against_o child_n baptism_n that_o carry_v any_o show_n and_o probability_n of_o reason_n which_o hitherto_o we_o have_v dissolve_v and_o discuss_v and_o this_o be_v the_o second_o point_n before_o propound_v now_o as_o we_o have_v see_v the_o truth_n prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o maintain_v it_o against_o all_o the_o ignorant_a cavil_n of_o the_o anabaptiste_n and_o other_o arrian_n of_o transiluania_n that_o have_v domini_fw-la oppugn_v this_o truth_n so_o let_v we_o come_v to_o see_v the_o benefit_n of_o this_o doctrine_n and_o what_o profit_n come_v by_o baptism_n of_o child_n that_o be_v without_o knowledge_n without_o understanding_n without_o faith_n and_o without_o repentance_n what_o use_n can_v there_o be_v of_o this_o much_o every_o way_n as_o well_o as_o by_o circumcise_n a_o infant_n of_o eight_o day_n old_a first_o consider_v from_o 1._o hence_o a_o plain_a and_o palpable_a error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 9_o that_o teach_v that_o the_o baptism_n of_o child_n be_v by_o tradition_n not_o by_o divine_a institution_n from_o their_o word_n unwritten_a not_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v but_o we_o have_v confute_v the_o anabaptiste_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o convince_v they_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o circumcision_n by_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o covenant_n by_o the_o holiness_n of_o their_o birth_n by_o their_o redemption_n through_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n this_o be_v better_a armour_n these_o be_v strong_a weapon_n this_o be_v a_o sharp_a sword_n to_o cut_v in_o
make_v we_o king_n and_o priest_n unto_o god_n even_o his_o father_n and_o col._n 1_o 14_o the_o a_o postle_n say_v in_o he_o we_o have_v redemption_n by_o his_o blood_n that_o be_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n again_o when_o we_o see_v with_o our_o bodily_a eye_n the_o water_n pour_v upon_o the_o body_n of_o the_o baptize_v we_o must_v behold_v 2_o and_o consider_v with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n the_o blot_n out_o of_o all_o our_o sin_n as_o well_o original_a as_o actual_a as_o well_o after_o baptism_n as_o before_o baptism_n by_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v assure_v ourselves_o it_o be_v no_o idle_a action_n for_o we_o must_v not_o behold_v the_o sacramental_a rite_n as_o certain_a dumb_a gesture_n or_o stage-like_a show_n without_o substance_n and_o signification_n but_o we_o must_v make_v they_o serve_v to_o further_a our_o faith_n and_o edification_n last_o it_o teach_v we_o not_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o outward_a sense_n to_o measure_v the_o truth_n or_o to_o judge_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o baptilme_n 3._o by_o the_o outward_a sign_n and_o visible_a part_n but_o to_o have_v our_o faith_n fix_v on_o christ_n crucify_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o signify_v in_o baptism_n the_o infidel_n see_v child_n solemn_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holyghost_n will_v rash_o and_o ignorant_o coniesture_n nothing_o to_o be_v there_o but_o naked_a rite_n and_o bare_a water_n but_o the_o faithful_a and_o true_a christian_a do_v behold_v the_o wash_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o cleanse_n of_o the_o heart_n by_o the_o dear_a blood_n of_o christ._n so_o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n to_o the_o unbeliever_n appear_v nothing_o but_o bread_n and_o wine_n because_o we_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n we_o receive_v 〈◊〉_d our_o hand_n we_o taste_v with_o our_o mouth_n no_o more_o but_o the_o believer_n know_v that_o together_o with_o these_o sign_n god_n the_o father_n offer_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n to_o be_v spiritual_o receive_v and_o digest_v even_o as_o he_o that_o be_v unlettered_a and_o unlearned_a if_o he_o look_v 12._o upon_o the_o face_n of_o a_o book_n behold_v only_o black_a colour_n and_o spot_v upon_o the_o paper_n see_v certain_a figure_n and_o charuster_n of_o letter_n differ_v each_o from_o other_o but_o can_v read_v the_o writing_n or_o comprehend_v the_o meaning_n but_o he_o that_o have_v learn_v his_o letter_n and_o be_v able_a to_o read_v they_o reap_v great_a profit_n and_o instruction_n thereby_o so_o be_v it_o in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d he_o that_o rest_v in_o the_o outward_a sign_n deceive_v himself_o but_o he_o that_o respect_v the_o thing_n signify_v receive_v the_o profit_n and_o advantage_n the_o cross_n of_o christ_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n 24._o be_v a_o stumble_a block_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o foolishness_n to_o the_o grecians_n for_o the_o infidel_n hear_v that_o christ_n be_v crucify_v and_o nail_v upon_o the_o cross_n be_v offend_v at_o he_o account_v it_o a_o foolish_a &_o weak_a mean_n to_o save_v mankind_n that_o life_n shall_v spring_v out_o of_o death_n glory_n come_v out_o of_o shame_n power_n proceed_v out_o of_o weakness_n and_o triumphant_a victory_n arise_v out_o of_o his_o contemptible_a suffering_n but_o the_o faithful_a soul_n acknowledge_v in_o this_o mystery_n of_o godlinesle_n the_o high_a hand_n and_o unsearchable_a wisdom_n of_o god_n it_o may_v seem_v ridiculous_a unto_o some_o man_n 10_o that_o god_n shall_v require_v circumcision_n of_o abraham_n and_o of_o his_o household_n young_a and_o old_a bond_n and_o free_a master_n and_o servant_n to_o uncover_v all_o their_o shame_n and_o to_o open_v the_o hide_a part_n of_o nature_n yet_o abraham_n submitttd_v himself_o to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n naamaen_n the_o syrian_a thought_n it_o a_o toyish_a precept_n &_o prescript_n when_o he_o be_v bid_v to_o wash_v himself_o 7._o time_n in_o jordin_n have_v many_o river_n in_o his_o own_o country_n as_o good_a as_o that_o yet_o by_o 14_o obey_v the_o prophet_n he_o be_v cleanse_v of_o his_o leprosy_n the_o inhabitant_n of_o jericho_n scorn_v joshua_n and_o the_o man_n of_o israel_n when_o they_o see_v they_o compass_v their_o city_n strong_a and_o wall_a 20_o and_o to_o blow_v with_o their_o ram_n horn_n yet_o by_o this_o weak_a mean_n the_o wall_n fall_v down_o the_o enemy_n be_v destroy_v the_o city_n be_v sack_v and_o the_o people_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d christ_n see_v a_o blind_a man_n and_o willing_a to_o heal_v he_o he_o spit_v on_o the_o ground_n 6_o and_o make_v clay_n of_o spittle_n and_o anoint_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a with_o the_o clay_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o go_v wash_v in_o the_o pool_n of_o siloam_n he_o obey_v he_o go_v he_o wash_v he_o return_v see_v thus_o do_v god_n by_o simple_a base_a and_o weak_a thing_n oftentimes_o confound_v the_o mighty_a strong_a and_o wise_a of_o the_o world_n that_o no_o flesh_n shall_v rejoice_v in_o his_o presence_n and_o cross_v all_o the_o high_a conceit_n and_o proud_a imagination_n of_o man_n will_n and_o wit_n wherefore_o we_o must_v not_o follow_v our_o own_o understanding_n nor_o measure_v the_o matter_n of_o god_n by_o the_o crooked_a rule_n of_o our_o carnal_a reason_n whosoever_o will_v yield_v obedience_n to_o god_n must_v deny_v himself_o and_o renounce_v his_o own_o wisdom_n 19_o and_o become_v a_o fool_n that_o he_o may_v be_v wise_a in_o god_n as_o 1_o cor_fw-la 3_o let_v no_o man_n deceive_v himself_o if_o any_o man_n among_o you_o seem_v to_o bec_fw-la wise_a in_o this_o world_n let_v he_o be_v a_o fool_n that_o he_o may_v be_v wise_a for_o the_o wisdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v foolishness_n with_o god_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o must_v understand_v more_o than_o we_o see_v and_o believe_v more_o than_o we_o can_v behold_v such_o 〈◊〉_d be_v without_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n 〈◊〉_d no_o more_o of_o baptism_n than_o the_o bodily_a eye_n direct_v they_o unto_o but_o the_o faithful_a conceive_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v offer_v to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o soul_n and_o conscience_n from_o all_o sin_n x_o as_o the_o river_n water_v the_o garden_n of_o eden_n chap._n 11._o of_o the_o foruth_n inward_a part_n of_o baptism_n the_o last_o inward_a part_n of_o baptism_n be_v the_o soul_n baptism_n cleanse_v most_o lively_o represent_v by_o the_o body_n that_o be_v wash_v for_o as_o the_o outward_a receiver_n give_v his_o body_n to_o be_v wash_v so_o the_o saithfull_a receiver_n do_v consecrate_v himself_o to_o god_n with_o joy_n and_o forsake_v the_o flesh_n the_o world_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o feel_v the_o inward_a wash_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o tit._n 3_o 5_o according_a to_o his_o 〈◊〉_d mercy_n he_o save_v we_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o the_o new_a birth_n and_o the_o renew_n of_o the_o holyghost_n and_o the_o same_o apostle_n eph._n 5._o christ_n give_v himself_o for_o the_o church_n that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v it_o and_o cleanse_v it_o by_o wash_v of_o water_n through_o the_o word_n that_o he_o may_v make_v it_o unto_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n not_o have_v spot_n or_o wrinkle_n wherefore_o this_o outward_a wash_n of_o the_o body_n command_v by_o christ_n signify_v unto_o i_o that_o i_o be_o no_o less_o assure_o cleanse_v in_o his_o blood_n by_o the_o work_n of_o his_o spirit_n from_o the_o spot_v of_o my_o soul_n that_o be_v from_o all_o my_o sin_n than_o i_o be_o outward_o wash_v by_o water_n whereby_o the_o stain_n of_o the_o body_n use_v to_o be_v wash_v away_o and_o it_o bind_v we_o that_o we_o ought_v ever_o afterward_o by_o our_o work_n and_o deed_n to_o declare_v newness_n of_o life_n and_o fruit_n of_o repentance_n let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o this_o last_o part_n of_o baptism_n 1._o do_v the_o wash_n of_o the_o body_n represent_v the_o cleanse_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o do_v the_o soak_a up_o of_o the_o filthiness_n of_o the_o flesh_n signify_v the_o remove_n of_o the_o remnant_n of_o rebellion_n then_o we_o be_v all_o by_o nature_n unwise_a unclean_a 〈◊〉_d unregerate_v unholy_a disobedient_a disorder_a deceive_v and_o be_v deceive_v we_o be_v the_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n the_o child_n of_o death_n the_o bondslave_n of_o satan_n the_o heir_n of_o damnation_n we_o have_v our_o part_n and_o portion_n in_o the_o offence_n of_o adam_n 24_o as_o rom._n 5._o by_o one_o man_n sin_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n and_o ch_z 7._o i_o see_v another_o law_n in_o my_o member_n rebel_a against_o the_o law_n of_o my_o mind_n and_o lead_v i_o captive_a unto_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v in_o my_o member_n o_o wretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o
have_v bring_v we_o into_o his_o church_n by_o baptism_n and_o make_v we_o as_o it_o be_v of_o his_o household_n servant_n then_o as_o a_o good_a father_n of_o the_o family_n he_o feed_v we_o spiritual_o with_o the_o flesh_n of_o his_o son_n apply_v unto_o we_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n this_o name_n sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v declare_v in_o the_o scripture_n by_o diverse_a name_n to_o deliver_v the_o nature_n thereof_o unto_o us._n sometime_o it_o be_v call_v the_o communion_n as_o 1_o cor_fw-la 10._o the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n which_o we_o bless_v be_v it_o not_o the_o 16_o communion_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n sometime_o it_o be_v call_v the_o lord_n supper_n as_o 1_o cor._n 11_o 20._o when_o you_o come_v together_o into_o one_o place_n this_o be_v not_o to_o eat_v 20._o the_o lord_n supper_n three_o sometime_o it_o be_v call_v the_o break_n of_o bread_n as_o act._n 2._o 42._o they_o continue_v in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o fellowship_n 7_o and_o break_v of_o bread_n and_o prayer_n and_o chap._n 20_o 7._o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n the_o disciple_n be_v come_v together_o to_o break_v bread_n paul_n preach_v unto_o they_o ready_a to_o depart_v on_o the_o morrow_n four_o sometime_o it_o be_v call_v the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o we_o see_v 1_o cor._n 10_o 21._o you_o can_v drink_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o devil_n you_o can_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o lord_n 21_o table_n and_o of_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n moreover_o we_o shall_v nothing_o offend_v if_o we_o call_v it_o the_o testament_n or_o will_n of_o christ_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o 26_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n this_o do_v as_o oft_o as_o you_o drink_v it_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o our_o saviour_n thus_o speak_v math._n 26_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n these_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o principal_a name_n give_v to_o this_o sacrament_n in_o the_o scripture_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o time_n succeed_v have_v give_v unto_o it_o other_o name_n and_o not_o unfit_o but_o my_o purpose_n be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o alle_fw-mi age_n the_o counsel_n or_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o to_o instruct_v the_o simple_a and_o unlearned_a i_o will_v content_v myself_o with_o expound_v such_o term_n and_o title_n as_o be_v pen_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o point_v out_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n now_o then_o let_v we_o render_v name_n the_o reason_n of_o such_o name_n as_o this_o sacrament_n be_v entitle_v withal_o it_o be_v call_v the_o communion_n because_o we_o have_v a_o communion_n &_o fellowship_n with_o christ_n and_o 17_o he_o with_o we_o both_o which_o be_v seal_v up_o the_o in_o this_o sacrament_n it_o be_v call_v the_o lord_n supper_n both_o because_o it_o be_v institute_v by_o the_o lord_n jesus_n at_o be_v last_o supper_n which_o circumstance_n of_o time_n the_o church_n have_v change_v &_o because_o therein_o be_v offer_v to_o we_o a_o spiritual_a banquet_n in_o which_o the_o faithful_a be_v spiritual_o feed_v and_o nourish_v it_o be_v call_v the_o break_n of_o bread_n both_o because_o this_o be_v a_o necessary_a action_n use_v of_o christ_n not_o to_o be_v omit_v and_o because_o it_o represent_v the_o crucifieng_v of_o christ_n and_o torment_v of_o his_o body_n so_o that_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v present_a at_o this_o significant_a ceremony_n but_o we_o must_v call_v to_o remembrance_n the_o sorrow_n and_o suffering_n of_o christ_n now_o if_o christ_n be_v thus_o torment_v for_o we_o sure_o we_o ought_v great_o to_o be_v gripe_v and_o grieve_v for_o our_o own_o sin_n which_o be_v also_o show_v by_o the_o 8_o sour_a herb_n of_o the_o passeover_n exod._n 12_o 8._o it_o be_v call_v the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n because_o he_o do_v feed_v we_o at_o it_o as_o this_o we_o know_v be_v the_o end_n and_o use_v of_o table_n in_o our_o house_n to_o set_v our_o meat_n and_o drink_n upon_o they_o prepare_v for_o our_o nourishment_n and_o this_o be_v the_o scope_n and_o end_n of_o the_o lord_n table_n only_o here_o lie_v a_o plain_a and_o main_a difference_n our_o table_n serve_v for_o bodily_a nourishment_n but_o the_o lord_n be_v prepare_v for_o the_o spiritual_a nourishment_n of_o our_o soul_n last_o it_o may_v be_v call_v the_o testament_n or_o will_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o asolemne_a covenant_n between_o god_n and_o we_o touch_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n which_o covenant_n be_v racify_v &_o establish_v by_o the_o 15_o death_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n so_o that_o herein_o we_o find_v all_o thing_n belong_v to_o a_o full_a and_o perfect_a testament_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v after_o ward_n out_o of_o these_o several_a name_n and_o title_n thus_o interpret_v arise_v most_o apt_o and_o fit_o sundry_a use_n which_o in_o order_n as_o they_o have_v be_v propound_v we_o will_v consider_v the_o first_o title_n be_v the_o communion_n from_o whence_o we_o deduct_v communion_n these_o necessary_a conclusion_n first_o of_o all_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n call_v a_o communion_n and_o so_o call_v of_o our_o communicate_v together_o then_o hereby_o all_o the_o faithful_a open_o testify_v that_o they_o be_v all_o one_o body_n couple_v 1_o together_o in_o christ_n jesus_n we_o profess_v he_o and_o all_o his_o benefit_n we_o receive_v he_o we_o enjoy_v he_o we_o rejoice_v in_o he_o god_n the_o father_n do_v give_v he_o the_o holy-ghost_n do_v assure_v he_o faith_n do_v receive_v he_o by_o this_o hand_n we_o be_v join_v to_o he_o and_o have_v spiritual_a fellowship_n with_o he_o wherefore_o all_o believer_n be_v make_v one_o by_o christ_n and_o this_o be_v not_o a_o union_n in_o imagination_n but_o in_o truth_n and_o in_o deed_n neither_o by_o transsusion_n of_o the_o property_n of_o the_o godhead_n or_o manhood_n into_o we_o 24_o but_o by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n dwell_v in_o christ_n and_o in_o all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n as_o 1_o cor._n 6_o he_o that_o 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o lord_n be_v one_o spirit_n and_o the_o apostle_n john_n testify_v that_o christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o christ_n by_o the_o spirit_n he_o that_o keep_v his_o commandment_n dwell_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o he_o and_o hereby_o we_o know_v that_o he_o abide_v in_o we_o even_o by_o the_o spirit_n which_o he_o have_v give_v we_o so_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o just_a and_o perfect_a man_n in_o heaven_n and_o all_o believer_n upon_o the_o earth_n how_o far_o socuer_v sunder_v in_o place_n have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o christ_n dwell_v in_o they_o be_v all_o one_o in_o christ_n their_o head_n god_n have_v give_v his_o own_o son_n unto_o we_o free_o and_o full_o our_o faith_n receive_v christ_n 12_o by_o believe_v he_o and_o all_o his_o gracious_a benefit_n to_o be_v we_o as_o joh._n 1_o 12_o as_o many_o as_o receive_v he_o to_o they_o he_o give_v prerogative_n to_o be_v the_o soxne_n of_o god_n even_o to_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n thus_o we_o see_v we_o be_v one_o with_o christ_n and_o christ_n with_o us._n second_o as_o this_o sacrament_n be_v a_o communion_n admonish_v 2_o that_o we_o be_v all_o one_o in_o christ_n so_o it_o teaeh_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v of_o many_o together_o in_o the_o church_n not_o of_o one_o alone_a and_o therefore_o it_o overthrow_v the_o private_a mass_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n where_o one_o partake_v all_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n nothing_o at_o all_o there_o be_v a_o flat_a opposition_n between_o these_o two_o so_o that_o the_o communion_n can_v be_v a_o private_a mass_n and_o private_a mass_n can_v be_v a_o communion_n that_o which_o be_v ordain_v and_o prepare_v for_o many_o deliver_v unto_o many_o and_o receive_v of_o many_o can_v stand_v with_o the_o mass_n where_o the_o priest_n prepare_v for_o himself_o not_o for_o the_o people_n he_o speak_v to_o himself_o not_o to_o the_o church_n he_o receive_v himself_o alone_o not_o with_o his_o brother_n all_o which_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n 3._o rule_v tarry_v one_o for_o another_o last_o if_o it_o be_v a_o communion_n it_o teach_v that_o this_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o unity_n and_o concord_n and_o we_o be_v there_o by_o put_v in_o mind_n to_o avoid_v discord_n and_o dislention_n for_o christ_n never_o communicate_v himself_o to_o
the_o malicious_a man_n 20_o as_o the_o apostle_n teachech_v 1_o cor._n 11_o 18_o 20._o when_o you_o come_v together_o in_o the_o church_n i_o hear_v that_o there_o be_v dissension_n among_o you_o this_o be_v not_o to_o eat_v the_o lord_n supper_n wherefore_o in_o that_o the_o people_n communicate_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o bread_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o wine_n it_o signify_v the_o union_n and_o agreement_n between_o all_o the_o faithful_a in_o one_o body_n where_o of_o christ_n icsns_n be_v the_o head_n who_o love_v we_o decre_o and_o spare_v not_o his_o life_n for_o us._n let_v we_o join_v ourselves_o together_o in_o love_n according_a to_o the_o exhortation_n 6_o of_o the_o apostle_n rome_n 15_o 5_o 6._o the_o god_n of_o patience_n and_o consolation_n give_v you_o that_o you_o 〈◊〉_d like_o mind_a one_o towards_o another_o according_a to_o christ_n jesus_n that_o you_o with_o one_o mind_n and_o with_o one_o mouth_n may_v praise_v god_n even_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n all_o believer_n must_v be_v of_o one_o heart_n and_o mind_n the_o wolf_n and_o the_o lamb_n the_o lion_n and_o the_o calf_n must_v dwell_v together_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n for_o all_o be_v one_o in_o christ_n jesus_n for_o the_o apostle_n have_v teach_v that_o the_o cup_n which_o we_o bless_v and_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n he_o add_v we_o that_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n because_o we_o be_v all_o partaker_n of_o one_o bread_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v 1_o cor_fw-la 11._o when_o you_o come_v together_o to_o eat_v tarry_v one_o for_o another_o the_o second_o title_n give_v to_o this_o sacrament_n be_v 〈◊〉_d the_o lord_n supper_n by_o which_o name_n it_o be_v now_o most_o usual_o and_o common_o call_v both_o because_o it_o be_v so_o institute_v by_o christ_n after_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n hereby_o we_o learn_v first_o who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o this_o sacrament_n not_o peter_n not_o paul_n not_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n 1_o not_o any_o man_n not_o any_o angel_n but_o christ_n jesus_n god_n and_o man_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o call_v the_o supper_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o of_o any_o man_n but_o of_o christ_n himself_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o baptism_n 15_o be_v paul_n crucify_v for_o you_o either_o be_v you_o baptize_v into_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n i_o baptize_v none_o into_o my_o oxne_a name_n wherefore_o this_o title_n serve_v to_o teach_v we_o and_o to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o author_n of_o this_o sacrament_n second_o see_v this_o sacrament_n be_v not_o a_o common_a supper_n 2._o but_o a_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a banquet_n full_o furnish_v not_o to_o fill_v the_o body_n but_o to_o feed_v the_o soul_n we_o must_v come_v with_o a_o earnest_a desire_n and_o longing_n after_o christ_n hunger_a and_o thirst_v after_o his_o righteousness_n and_o merit_n as_o after_o our_o life_n to_o be_v make_v pattaker_n thereof_o for_o never_o do_v the_o body_n more_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o corporal_a food_n then_o 3._o do_v the_o soul_n of_o this_o 27_o bread_n of_o life_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n which_o the_o father_n have_v promit_v to_o give_v unto_o we_o last_o it_o condemn_v our_o xi_o english_a rhemiste_n and_o other_o 10_o romish_a reader_n of_o popish_a divinity_n that_o whole_o condemn_v this_o name_n and_o title_n as_o unproper_a and_o unfit_a for_o this_o sacrament_n and_o understande_v the_o apostle_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o love-feaste_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n indeed_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n they_o use_v to_o meet_v to_o gither_o in_o one_o common_a place_n not_o only_o for_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n for_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o for_o prayer_n to_o god_n but_o to_o keep_v certain_a feast_n which_o of_o their_o end_n or_o use_n be_v call_v 13_o feast_n of_o charity_n as_o jude_n speak_v but_o of_o these_o the_o apostle_n speak_v not_o when_o he_o name_v the_o lord_n supper_n for_o first_o let_v they_o show_v we_o the_o place_n where_o ever_o these_o love-feast_n be_v call_v the_o lord_n supper_n and_o then_o they_o may_v warrant_v their_o exposition_n by_o some_o colour_n otherwise_o we_o can_v receive_v their_o interpretation_n be_v of_o private_a motion_n second_o if_o this_o title_n be_v mean_v of_o love-feaste_n to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v the_o apostle_n bring_v in_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o large_o handle_v the_o doctrine_n thereof_o where_o as_o their_o abuse_n in_o their_o love-feast_n may_v be_v reform_v and_o 〈◊〉_d without_o this_o mention_n and_o remembrance_n of_o the_o supper_n three_o to_o what_o end_n shall_v these_o solemn_a feast_n and_o banquet_n be_v call_v the_o lord_n supper_n which_o be_v not_o institute_v in_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n but_o to_o testify_v the_o mutual_a love_n of_o those_o that_o be_v member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n have_v god_n for_o their_o merciful_a father_n the_o church_n for_o their_o tender_a mother_n and_o christ_n for_o their_o elder_a brother_n these_o might_n rather_o be_v call_v the_o supper_n of_o man_n then_o of_o the_o lord_n be_v feast_n of_o charity_n not_o of_o piety_n four_o the_o apostle_n drift_n and_o purpose_n in_o this_o place_n be_v to_o teach_v that_o such_o as_o nourish_v dissension_n and_o division_n partake_v the_o lord_n supper_n unworthy_o and_o therefore_o will_v they_o when_o they_o come_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o lord_n to_o shake_v out_o of_o their_o mind_n all_o uncharitable_a affection_n as_o chaff_n from_o good_a corn_n that_o so_o they_o may_v assemble_v together_o with_o profit_n and_o not_o with_o hurt_n last_o of_o all_o to_o call_v this_o sacrament_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v usual_a among_o the_o ancient_a father_n domin_v of_o the_o church_n ground_v themselves_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n 〈◊〉_d some_o of_o their_o own_o writer_n 11_o call_v this_o sacrament_n and_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o saint_n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n if_o therefore_o they_o will_v rest_v themselves_o either_o in_o the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o in_o the_o exposition_n 40_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n or_o in_o the_o confession_n of_o their_o own_o writer_n we_o can_v doubt_v but_o the_o apostle_n mean_v the_o lord_n supper_n understand_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n the_o next_o title_n give_v to_o this_o sacrament_n be_v the_o break_n of_o bread_n which_o offer_v to_o our_o consideration_n these_o use_v not_o bread_n to_o be_v pass_v over_o first_o it_z she_o weth_z that_o the_o substance_n of_o breed_v remain_v after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n and_o be_v not_o alter_v by_o any_o strange_a transubstantiation_n for_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n 24_o which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o proper_o 1_o it_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v 36_o not_o break_v but_o of_o his_o crucify_a and_o death_n by_o a_o figurative_a speech_n take_v from_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n which_o christ_n break_v to_o distribute_v it_o among_o his_o disciple_n and_o to_o represent_v effectual_o his_o suffering_n for_o us._n the_o accident_n of_o bread_n can_v be_v break_v as_o we_o shall_v see_v afterward_o no_o more_o than_o they_o can_v feed_v and_o nourish_v beside_o we_o learn_v hereby_o that_o trope_n and_o figure_n be_v use_v 2._o in_o the_o sacrament_n contrary_a to_o the_o opinion_n and_o assertion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o we_o make_v plain_a by_o the_o institution_n and_o as_o we_o constrain_v the_o adversary_n themselves_o to_o confess_v as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v his_o body_n be_v break_v where_o the_o lyterall_a sense_n can_v be_v retain_v see_v a_o bone_n of_o he_o can_v not_o be_v break_v likewise_o when_o it_o be_v say_v the_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n the_o rock_n be_v christ_n the_o bread_n be_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n these_o and_o such_o like_a can_v be_v interpret_v without_o a_o figure_n last_o see_v of_o this_o one_o action_n the_o whole_a sacrament_n have_v his_o denomination_n 207_o as_o appear_v in_o many_o place_n act_n two_o 42._o and_o xx_o 7._o and_o 1_o cor_n xi_o xxiiii_o we_o must_v hold_v that_o as_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n be_v wont_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o supper_n to_o break_v the_o bread_n so_o must_v we_o follow_v their_o example_n as_o they_o also_o follow_v the_o example_n
of_o all_o the_o part_n and_o people_n but_o read_v and_o pray_v in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n do_v not_o edify_v and_o profit_v the_o hearer_n as_o 1_o cor._n 14_o 26_o let_v allthing_n be_v xi_o do_v to_o edisieng_v and_o verse_n 14._o i_o speak_v language_n more_o than_o you_o all_o yet_o have_v i_o rather_o in_o the_o church_n to_o speak_v five_o word_n with_o my_o understanding_n that_o i_o may_v also_o instruct_v other_o than_o ten_o thousand_o word_n in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n for_o how_o then_o shall_v he_o that_o occupy_v the_o room_n of_o the_o unlearned_a say_v amen_o at_o thy_o give_v of_o thanks_n see_v he_o know_v not_o what_o thou_o say_v wherefore_o except_o we_o know_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n we_o shall_v be_v to_o he_o that_o speak_v barbarian_n and_o 〈◊〉_d that_o speak_v shall_v be_v a_o barbarian_a unto_o us._n even_o the_o learned_a language_n of_o greek_a and_o latin_a not_o in_o themselves_o but_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o hearer_n that_o understand_v they_o not_o be_v barbarous_a for_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o here_o like_o a_o orator_n distinguish_v the_o tongue_n and_o show_v which_o be_v 〈◊〉_d and_o rhetorical_a in_o themselves_o and_o which_o rude_a but_o hold_v every_o tongue_n barbarous_a 〈◊〉_d syriack_n caldy_n arabic_a 〈◊〉_d and_o latin_a to_o he_o that_o know_v not_o the_o force_n and_o signification_n thereof_o and_o this_o to_o be_v most_o true_a xiiii_o the_o scripture_n tooth_n 35_o the_o father_n avouch_v 1_o the_o 〈◊〉_d writer_n warrant_v 10_o the_o very_a poet_n declare_v yea_o their_o own_o doctor_n proaemio_fw-la do_v determine_v wherefore_o to_o conclude_v it_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o christian_n when_o the_o word_n be_v red_a or_o preach_v when_o supplycation_n be_v offer_v when_o the_o sacrament_n be_v administer_v to_o use_v a_o know_a tongue_n understand_v of_o all_o and_o without_o this_o the_o scripture_n be_v vain_a the_o prayer_n be_v barbarous_a the_o sacrament_n be_v fruitless_a to_o such_o as_o know_v not_o what_o be_v read_v what_o be_v ask_v what_o be_v promise_v what_o be_v receive_v and_o 〈◊〉_d far_o of_o the_o second_o outward_a part_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n xv_o to_o wit_n the_o word_n of_o institution_n for_o a_o sacrament_n without_o the_o word_n be_v as_o a_o picture_n without_o sense_n or_o a_o image_n without_o life_n chap._n 5_o of_o the_o three_o outward_a part_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n the_o three_o outward_a part_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n follow_v 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v the_o element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n fit_a sign_n for_o this_o purpose_n to_o signify_v the_o spiritual_a nourishment_n of_o the_o soul_n by_o eat_v the_o body_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o these_o be_v appoint_v as_o the_o substance_n and_o matter_n of_o the_o supper_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n deliver_v this_o sacrament_n for_o the_o evangelist_n express_v 7_o that_o christ_n take_v bread_n give_v it_o and_o say_v takeye_n and_o eat_v you_o so_o like_o wise_a it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o church_n new_o plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o such_o as_o glad_o receive_v the_o word_n and_o be_v baptize_v continue_v in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o fellowship_n and_o break_v of_o bread_n and_o chap._n 20_o 16_o it_o be_v record_v that_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n the_o disciple_n come_v together_o to_o break_v bread_n and_o paul_n say_v 1_o cor._n 10._o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o chapter_n 28_o follow_v the_o same_o apostle_n often_o mention_v and_o remember_v the_o bread_n of_o this_o sacrament_n in_o like_a manner_n christ_n take_v the_o cup_n 18_o wherein_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n by_o these_o christ_n be_v true_o exhibit_v unto_o we_o he_o be_v true_o offer_v unto_o all_o he_o be_v effectual_o give_v to_o the_o faithful_a as_o have_v be_v oftentimes_o remember_v unto_o us._n this_o be_v the_o plain_a and_o evident_a truth_n let_v we_o see_v the_o use_n first_o such_o as_o concern_v both_o the_o sign_n joint_o and_o in_o 1_o general_a than_o such_o as_o belong_v to_o each_o of_o they_o in_o several_a and_o in_o particular_a to_o begin_v we_o learn_v from_o hence_o to_o acknowledge_v a_o difference_n between_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o baptism_n we_o have_v one_o sign_n as_o the_o material_a part_n in_o the_o supper_n we_o have_v two_o sign_n baptism_n partly_o to_o note_v out_o our_o whole_a full_a and_o perfect_a nourishment_n in_o christ_n have_v whatsocuer_v be_v requisite_a for_o our_o salvation_n and_o partly_o to_o show_v a_o full_a remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n for_o the_o wine_n which_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o his_o blood_n do_v as_o it_o be_v present_v it_o and_o represent_v it_o before_o our_o eye_n so_o then_o albeit_o the_o same_o participation_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o same_o wash_n away_o of_o sin_n by_o his_o blood_n be_v seal_v up_o in_o baptism_n and_o in_o the_o supper_n yet_o the_o manner_n supper_n of_o seal_v they_o in_o each_o be_v diverse_a again_o baptism_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o our_o entrance_n into_o god_n covenant_n the_o supper_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o our_o abide_n and_o continue_v in_o that_o covenant_n touch_v baptism_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o infant_n if_o they_o be_v bear_v in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o supper_n the_o condition_n of_o examyn_v ourselves_o and_o remember_v the_o lord_n death_n be_v require_v they_o differ_v also_o in_o often_o celebration_n of_o they_o baptism_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v but_o once_o only_a in_o all_o our_o life_n because_o the_o promise_n once_o make_v be_v always_o firm_a and_o forcible_a to_o such_o as_o believe_v and_o repent_v but_o the_o supper_n be_v oftentimes_o to_o be_v receive_v because_o a_o often_o renew_v of_o that_o covenant_n and_o call_v it_o to_o our_o remembrance_n be_v necessary_a to_o increase_v and_o strengthen_v faith_n they_o differ_v also_o in_o the_o order_n which_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o use_n of_o they_o for_o baptism_n be_v to_o be_v give_v before_o the_o supper_n and_o the_o supper_n may_v not_o be_v give_v to_o any_o except_o to_o such_o as_o have_v be_v first_o baptize_v or_o repute_v so_o to_o be_v as_o first_o a_o child_n be_v bear_v before_o he_o be_v feed_v so_o must_v baptism_n go_v before_o whereby_o our_o new-birth_n be_v seal_v then_o the_o supper_n must_v follow_v after_o whereby_o our_o daily_a nourishment_n be_v declare_v and_o confirm_v last_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o sign_n there_o be_v only_o one_o sign_n in_o baptism_n which_o be_v the_o water_n but_o there_o be_v two_o sign_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n to_o wit_n the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n the_o second_o general_a use_n be_v that_o if_o christ_n take_v give_v and_o 2_o deliver_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n then_o they_o must_v needs_o retain_v their_o former_a nature_n &_o their_o proper_a substance_n as_o well_o as_o their_o quality_n as_o fight_v taste_n smell_v bigness_n whiteness_n sweetness_n rednesle_n roundness_n and_o such_o like_a property_n but_o the_o papist_n turn_v all_o thing_n subject_n upside_o down_o matter_n into_o form_n substance_n into_o accident_n creature_n into_o show_n and_o subject_n into_o thing_n adjoin_v they_o bring_v in_o new_a shift_n and_o fable_n against_o all_o divinity_n philosophy_n reason_n sense_n and_o experience_n set_v up_o their_o own_o invention_n and_o build_v castle_n in_o the_o air_n let_v they_o prove_v the_o annihilation_n and_o remove_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n away_o and_o the_o 3_o consist_v of_o accident_n without_o subject_n which_o they_o be_v never_o able_a to_o do_v for_o as_o the_o water_n in_o baptism_n remain_v in_o his_o nature_n and_o substance_n so_o do_v the_o bread_n &_o wine_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o albeit_o in_o both_o the_o sacrament_n the_o sign_n be_v change_v to_o a_o special_a use_n yet_o be_v they_o corrupt_v into_o show_n and_o turn_v into_o shadow_n the_o heaven_n 26_o shall_v be_v change_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o hence_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v clean_o abolish_v and_o consume_v to_o nothing_o all_o young_a scholar_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o school_n 〈◊〉_d that_o a_o accident_n have_v no_o be_v without_o a_o subject_n yet_o here_o these_o sophister_n against_o all_o the_o rule_n of_o logic_n accident_n and_o ground_n of_o reason_n 〈◊〉_d have_v accident_n and_o show_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v in_o no_o subject_n thus_o whereas_o in_o all_o place_n of_o learning_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o accident_n may_v 〈◊〉_d not_o the_o
substance_n of_o thing_n they_o 〈◊〉_d have_v the_o matter_n and_o substance_n to_o perish_v not_o the_o 〈◊〉_d we_o see_v whiteness_n roundness_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o cast_v the_o sweetness_n we_o touch_v all_o these_o qualuy_n 〈◊〉_d behold_v a_o popish_a wonder_n where_o at_o marvel_n and_o be_v 〈◊〉_d these_o these_o i_o say_v be_v not_o in_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n because_o they_o be_v go_v neither_o in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o be_v not_o white_a or_o black_a round_a or_o red_a so_o we_o shall_v have_v a_o 〈◊〉_d thing_n yet_o nothing_o white_a a_o round_a thing_n yet_o nothing_o round_o a_o smell_n yet_o nothing_o that_o smell_v a_o taste_n of_o bread_n yet_o nothing_o that_o taste_v a_o break_n and_o yet_o nothing_o that_o be_v break_v so_o that_o here_o we_o have_v some_o what_o make_v of_o nothing_o and_o nothing_o make_v of_o somewhat_o for_o if_o any_o shall_v ask_v they_o what_o round_o or_o white_a thing_n be_v this_o show_v the_o bread_n or_o what_o sweet_a thing_n be_v that_o point_v out_o the_o wine_n in_o the_o cup_n they_o can_v say_v it_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n for_o they_o hold_v that_o none_o be_v lest_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o shape_v any_o answer_n for_o they_o will_v not_o say_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v white_a round_a sweet_a red_a or_o such_o like_a wherefore_o these_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n rove_a without_o subject_n be_v show_n of_o reason_n without_o substance_n colour_n without_o truth_n and_o fancy_n without_o settle_a judgement_n and_o as_o well_o may_v they_o imagine_v walk_v without_o foot_n a_o house_n without_o a_o foundation_n a_o vessel_n without_o bortom_n or_o a_o body_n without_o space_n or_o place_n again_o what_o be_v it_o that_o 〈◊〉_d nourish_v what_o be_v it_o that_o do_v 〈◊〉_d and_o refresh_v for_o we_o feel_v our_o body_n strengthen_v by_o the_o creature_n take_v and_o receive_v and_o we_o read_v in_o their_o own_o history_n that_o king_n lewes_n the_o gentle_a for_o the_o 19_o space_n of_o 40._o day_n do_v eat_v nothing_o else_o what_o be_v it_o then_o whereby_o we_o feel_v ourselves_o to_o be_v feed_v can_v their_o accident_n do_v it_o hang_v in_o the_o air_n by_o miraculous_a geometry_n can_v whiteness_n or_o redness_n or_o roundness_n nourish_v we_o where_o no_o substance_n be_v to_o be_v find_v or_o feel_v can_v dryness_n or_o moisture_n can_v smell_a or_o see_v nourish_v without_o some_o material_a body_n they_o can_v it_o must_v be_v substance_n that_o be_v turn_v into_o our_o substance_n for_o never_o be_v it_o hear_v that_o accident_n be_v turn_v into_o substance_n but_o whereas_o we_o have_v be_v teach_v that_o accident_n be_v in_o their_o subject_n now_o we_o must_v hold_v for_o our_o new_a learning_n that_o substance_n be_v in_o their_o accedent_n wherefore_o let_v we_o leave_v these_o doubtful_a and_o deceitful_a builder_n that_o go_v about_o to_o build_v without_o ground_n or_o foundation_n which_o can_v stand_v the_o three_o general_a use_n arise_v from_o both_o the_o sign_n be_v this_o if_o christ_n deliver_v his_o last_o supper_n in_o bread_n and_o wine_n than_o 3._o these_o sign_n may_v not_o be_v alter_v but_o must_v be_v supper_n retain_v for_o the_o perpetual_a use_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o church_n and_o howsoever_o it_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o choice_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n what_o bread_n or_o what_o wine_n they_o will_v use_v yet_o that_o it_o ought_v necessary_o as_o i_o take_v it_o to_o be_v bread_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n may_v appear_v by_o diverse_a good_a consideration_n i_o will_v propound_v the_o reason_n that_o draw_v i_o to_o this_o opinion_n let_v the_o church_n judge_v of_o they_o see_v the_o 32_o spirit_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o prophet_n first_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o supper_n and_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n himself_o who_o the_o church_n be_v to_o imitate_v and_o follow_v who_o say_v do_v 25_o this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o he_o say_v not_o do_v the_o like_a or_o do_v what_o please_v you_o and_o swerve_v from_o my_o example_n where_o you_o will_v but_o do_v this_o which_o you_o have_v see_v i_o do_v whosoever_o therefore_o change_v either_o the_o bread_n or_o wine_n do_v not_o that_o which_o christ_n command_v but_o another_o thing_n than_o he_o appoint_v again_o no_o other_o sign_n be_v so_o significant_a &_o effectual_a as_o these_o be_v for_o this_o purpose_n to_o strengthen_v and_o to_o comfort_v they_o that_o be_v in_o trouble_n and_o almost_o in_o the_o present_a 15_o estate_n of_o death_n as_o psal._n 104._o he_o bring_v forth_o bread_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o wine_n that_o make_v glad_a the_o heart_n 19_o of_o man_n and_o oil_n to_o make_v the_o face_n to_o shine_v and_o bread_n that_o strengthen_v man_n heart_n likewise_o the_o wiseman_n say_v pro._n 31._o give_v you_o strong_a drink_n unto_o he_o that_o be_v ready_a to_o perish_v and_o 〈◊〉_d to_o they_o that_o have_v grief_n of_o heart_n so_o that_o we_o be_v hereby_o effectual_o and_o significant_o put_v in_o mind_n to_o have_v a_o most_o sweet_a feel_n of_o christ_n to_o seek_v strength_n in_o he_o and_o that_o it_o be_v he_o which_o abundant_o clear_v our_o heart_n three_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n of_o every_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d be_v hold_v to_o be_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o and_o to_o constitute_v the_o essence_n so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n where_o the_o sign_n be_v the_o matter_n and_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n be_v the_o form_n true_a it_o be_v circumstance_n may_v vary_v and_o be_v change_v as_o time_n place_n sitting_z standing_z kneeling_z and_o such_o like_a but_o the_o essential_a part_n may_v not_o be_v change_v if_o 〈◊〉_d both_o of_o they_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o sacrament_n such_o 〈◊〉_d take_v either_o of_o they_o away_o destroy_v the_o sacrament_n and_o bring_v in_o a_o nullity_n thereof_o wherefore_o if_o the_o sign_n which_o be_v the_o matter_n may_v be_v change_v then_o the_o word_n also_o of_o institution_n which_o be_v the_o form_n may_v be_v alter_v and_o a_o new_a word_n bring_v into_o the_o church_n but_o a_o new_a word_n can_v be_v bring_v in_o therefore_o no_o new_a outward_a sign_n or_o matter_n four_o if_o the_o bread_n &_o wine_n in_o the_o supper_n may_v be_v change_v and_o yet_o the_o sacrament_n in_o substance_n remain_v then_o in_o like_a manner_n water_n in_o baptism_n may_v be_v change_v &_o yet_o be_v 〈◊〉_d baptism_n for_o of_o thing_n that_o be_v like_a there_o be_v a_o like_a respect_n and_o like_o conclusion_n to_o be_v infer_v but_o this_o can_v be_v as_o we_o have_v show_v before_o in_o 2._o book_n chap._n 5._o where_o we_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o minister_n can_v baptize_v with_o any_o other_o liquor_n or_o element_n then_o with_o water_n as_o the_o matter_n of_o that_o sacrament_n neither_o let_v any_o object_n the_o case_n of_o necessity_n for_o no_o necessity_n can_v make_v that_o lawful_a which_o simple_o and_o in_o itself_o be_v unlawful_a five_o if_o we_o admit_v and_o grant_v a_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o sign_n at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o man_n why_o may_v we_o not_o also_o change_v other_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n why_o may_v we_o not_o in_o stead_n of_o the_o minister_n appoint_v of_o god_n and_o call_v 〈◊〉_d the_o church_n admit_v pryvate_a person_n and_o receive_v other_o 〈◊〉_d enforce_v upon_o the_o church_n by_o the_o papist_n do_v we_o not_o hereby_o open_a a_o gap_n for_o they_o to_o 〈◊〉_d in_o all_o their_o trash_n and_o trumpery_n beside_o the_o write_a and_o reveil_v word_n of_o god_n six_o we_o have_v show_v in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d book_n that_o nadab_n and_o abihu_n the_o two_o son_n aaron_n be_v smite_v by_o the_o immediate_a hand_n of_o god_n 2_o for_o offer_v the_o oblation_n with_o strange_a fire_n but_o all_o sign_n bring_v into_o the_o sacrament_n beside_o the_o scripture_n be_v strange_a sign_n and_o consequent_o procure_v strange_a judgement_n and_o we_o see_v how_o the_o prophet_n joell_n threaten_v from_o god_n a_o dearth_n of_o corn_n and_o wine_n and_o of_o oil_n declare_v also_o that_o the_o offering_n shall_v cease_v where_o he_o 19_o say_v the_o field_n be_v waste_v the_o corn_n be_v destroy_v the_o oil_n be_v 〈◊〉_d the_o new_a wine_n be_v dry_v up_o the_o meat_n offer_v and_o the_o drink_n offering_n be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o priest_n the_o lord_n minister_n shall_v mourn_v show_v hereby_o that_o they_o be_v restrain_v from_o change_v the_o out_o ward_v sign_n if_o any_o pretend_v great_a freedom_n and_o liberty_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n let_v they_o show_v their_o 〈◊〉_d and_o we_o will_v believe_v they_o last_o it_o be_v confess_v on_o
all_o side_n that_o without_o consecration_n and_o sanctification_n there_o can_v be_v no_o sacrament_n for_o without_o this_o hallow_n the_o matter_n in_o 〈◊〉_d be_v bare_a water_n the_o bread_n in_o the_o supper_n be_v bare_a bread_n the_o wine_n be_v common_a wine_n now_o every_o creature_n 5_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o prayer_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v 1_o tim._n 4._o and_o therefore_o we_o can_v assure_v our_o heart_n that_o god_n will_v bless_v any_o other_o creature_n as_o fish_n or_o flesh_n in_o stead_n of_o bread_n water_n or_o beer_n in_o stead_n of_o wine_n see_v the_o word_n have_v not_o sanctify_v these_o element_n for_o this_o purpose_n they_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n for_o the_o ordinary_a nourishment_n of_o our_o body_n but_o they_o be_v not_o by_o any_o special_a word_n sanctify_v for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n if_o then_o it_o be_v simple_o unlawful_a to_o change_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d no_o pretence_n or_o necessity_n can_v 〈◊〉_d make_v it_o lawsull_n and_o as_o when_o a_o lawful_a minister_n be_v want_v a_o pryvate_a person_n may_v not_o be_v take_v so_o when_o the_o matter_n appoint_v for_o the_o administration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v miss_v a_o other_o may_v not_o be_v assume_v for_o as_o well_o may_v we_o change_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o sacrament_n into_o a_o pryvate_a man_n as_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v the_o sign_n into_o another_o matter_n if_o the_o sacrament_n can_v be_v have_v according_a to_o the_o precise_a and_o pure_a institution_n of_o christ_n they_o may_v lawful_o be_v defer_v or_o omit_v for_o the_o danger_n stand_v not_o in_o the_o want_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v free_a from_o the_o contempt_n of_o they_o the_o four_o general_a use_n arise_v joint_o from_o both_o the_o sign_n be_v if_o christ_n deliver_v and_o the_o disciple_n receive_v 4._o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o the_o outward_a sign_n of_o this_o sacrament_n then_o we_o learn_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v a_o dotage_n transubstantiation_n of_o man_n invention_n though_o this_o devise_n be_v now_o receive_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o salvation_n as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o a_o main_a point_n of_o religion_n 4._o that_o by_o virtue_n of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v go_v and_o nothing_o remain_v but_o only_o the_o show_n likeness_n and_o appearance_n of_o they_o yet_o if_o we_o examine_v the_o matter_n by_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n by_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n by_o the_o proportion_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o true_a property_n of_o a_o true_a human_a body_n by_o force_n of_o reason_n by_o judgement_n of_o the_o sense_n by_o confession_n of_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o and_o by_o the_o manifold_a contradiction_n among_o themselves_o we_o shall_v find_v it_o to_o be_v a_o late_a devise_n &_o invention_n of_o the_o papist_n first_o decree_v and_o determine_v in_o the_o counsel_n of_o lateran_n under_o pope_n innocentius_n the_o 3._o in_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n john_n of_o england_n 1215._o not_o yet_o 400._o year_n ago_o there_o it_o be_v hatch_v at_o that_o time_n and_o make_v council_n a_o main_a matter_n of_o faith_n approved_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o yet_o not_o then_o receive_v over_o all_o the_o world_n this_o error_n be_v a_o spice_n of_o the_o error_n of_o marcus_n who_o go_v about_o to_o make_v his_o fellow_n and_o follower_n believe_v 34._o that_o he_o do_v transubstantiate_a wine_n into_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n thus_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o this_o day_n he_o be_v he_o note_v for_o a_o heretic_n by_o the_o father_n i_o will_v not_o for_o shortness_n sake_n bring_v all_o the_o reason_n that_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o overthrow_v and_o overturn_v nature_n the_o turn_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n but_o allege_v some_o few_o among_o many_o whereunto_o we_o require_v they_o to_o answer_v if_o they_o can_v neither_o let_v they_o pretend_v that_o they_o have_v be_v answer_v already_o inasmuch_o as_o no_o sound_n and_o certain_a answer_n can_v be_v bring_v unto_o they_o to_o satisfy_v we_o or_o themselves_o our_o reason_n for_o the_o present_n shall_v be_v these_o first_o that_o which_o christ_n take_v in_o his_o hand_n he_o break_v that_o which_o he_o break_v he_o give_v that_o which_o he_o give_v his_o disciple_n he_o command_v they_o to_o eat_v that_o which_o he_o command_v they_o to_o eat_v he_o call_v his_o body_n this_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n 19_o of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o coherence_n of_o the_o word_n but_o he_o take_v bread_n and_o break_v it_o therefore_o he_o give_v bread_n he_o command_v to_o eat_v bread_n he_o say_v of_o the_o bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n now_o if_o he_o take_v bread_n but_o break_v it_o not_o or_o if_o he_o break_v bread_n but_o give_v it_o not_o or_o if_o he_o give_v bread_n to_o his_o disciple_n to_o eat_v but_o tell_v they_o not_o this_o which_o he_o give_v they_o but_o some_o other_o thing_n beside_o that_o be_v his_o body_n the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d start_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o the_o middle_n swerve_v from_o they_o both_o second_o the_o apostle_n after_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n do_v oftentimes_o call_v it_o bread_n as_o 1_o cor._n 11._o as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v this_o 16_o bread_n and_o drink_v this_o cup_n you_o show_v the_o lord_n doath_z till_o he_o come_v and_o again_o whosoever_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n unworthy_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o again_o let_v a_o man_n examme_fw-mi himself_o and_o so_o let_v he_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup._n these_o man_n say_v it_o be_v not_o bread_n the_o apostle_n say_v it_o be_v bread_n whether_o of_o these_o we_o shall_v believe_v judge_v you_o so_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n he_o say_v the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o commanion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n likewise_o touch_v the_o other_o sign_n 29_o our_o saviour_n express_o call_v it_o wine_n after_o the_o thanks_o give_v mat._n 26._o i_o will_v not_o drink_v henceforth_o of_o this_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n until_o that_o day_n when_o i_o shall_v drink_v it_o new_a with_o you_o in_o my_o father_n kingdom_n this_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n be_v wine_n therefore_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o remain_v now_o if_o the_o bread_n have_v be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n or_o the_o wine_n into_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v speak_v proper_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v not_o this_o bread_n but_o this_o body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n and_o again_o he_o that_o eat_v the_o body_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n unworthy_o and_o again_o let_v a_o man_n examine_v himself_o and_o so_o let_v he_o eat_v and_o take_v in_o his_o mouth_n the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n his_o creator_n but_o thus_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o speak_v neither_o can_v he_o so_o speak_v true_o proper_o and_o fit_o therefore_o we_o do_v true_o proper_o and_o fit_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v no_o 〈◊〉_d three_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o cup_n say_v take_v 19_o divide_v it_o among_o you_o and_o of_o the_o bread_n he_o say_v he_o take_v it_o and_o break_v it_o but_o if_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v abolish_v or_o change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o likewise_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o wine_n turn_v into_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a distribute_v or_o break_v for_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o divide_v into_o part_n neither_o be_v his_o body_n break_v four_o if_o the_o strength_n or_o force_n of_o transubstantiation_n depend_v upon_o these_o word_n of_o institution_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n then_o there_o can_v be_v no_o real_a change_n before_o these_o word_n be_v full_o finish_v and_o pronounce_v to_o the_o end_n i_o herefore_o when_o they_o begin_v to_o say_v 〈◊〉_d be_v what_o be_v it_o what_o mean_v they_o i_o say_v it_o be_v be_v it_o any_o other_o then_o bread_n and_o wine_n by_o their_o own_o confession_n till_o the_o word_n be_v end_v so_o then_o these_o sentence_n shall_v not_o be_v true_a when_o they_o say_v 〈◊〉_d be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n
it_o be_v the_o lord_n supper_n may_v after_o a_o sort_n be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n not_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n mean_v sacrifice_n but_o because_o therein_o we_o offer_v up_o praise_n &_o thanks_o giving_n to_o god_n for_o that_o sacrifice_n of_o atonement_n once_o make_v upon_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v most_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o because_o such_o as_o come_v aright_o thereunto_o offer_v up_o themselves_o whole_o to_o god_n a_o reasonable_a holy_a and_o live_a sacrifice_n and_o last_o because_o thereby_o we_o call_v to_o our_o remembrance_n 〈◊〉_d bloody_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n withal_o 〈◊〉_d circumstance_n thereof_o the_o shame_n of_o the_o cross_n the_o darkness_n of_o the_o heaven_n the_o shake_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o rent_v of_o the_o air_n the_o cleave_v of_o the_o rock_n the_o reproach_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o taunt_n of_o the_o soldier_n the_o open_n of_o the_o grave_n &_o the_o conquer_a of_o the_o devil_n for_o the_o christian_n in_o former_a time_n sacrifice_n perceive_v that_o many_o both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n refuse_v to_o embrace_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o join_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n because_o they_o pretend_v the_o want_n of_o sacrifice_n among_o they_o and_o nature_n engraft_v in_o all_o nation_n this_o principle_n that_o we_o have_v no_o free_a access_n to_o god_n no_o true_a peace_n to_o our_o self_n without_o a_o sacrifice_n the_o father_n to_o win_v such_o as_o be_v without_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n have_v also_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o thereupon_o entitle_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o supper_n with_o the_o name_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n book_n for_o the_o cause_n before_o remember_v but_o for_o a_o mortal_a man_n who_o breath_n be_v in_o his_o nostril_n to_o presume_v in_o the_o pride_n of_o his_o hart_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o offer_v up_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n to_o his_o father_n and_o to_o dare_v to_o desire_v the_o father_n favourable_o to_o behold_v and_o accept_v his_o own_o son_n be_v idolatry_n blasphemy_n and_o horrible_a impiety_n to_o be_v detest_v of_o all_o true_a heart_a christian_n touch_v the_o original_n of_o mass_n the_o word_n mass_n it_o seem_v to_o come_v from_o a_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n send_v away_o such_o as_o communicate_v not_o for_o the_o deacon_n be_v accustom_v to_o bid_v they_o depart_v that_o be_v novice_n in_o the_o faith_n and_o such_o as_o by_o church-discipline_n 10_o be_v remove_v from_o the_o communion_n this_o dimission_n of_o they_o be_v note_v by_o the_o word_n missa_fw-la signify_v a_o send_n away_o and_o licens_v to_o depart_v and_o thus_o some_o of_o 25_o the_o heathen_a use_v it_o the_o name_n then_o be_v in_o itself_o not_o evil_a be_v turn_v into_o a_o evil_a practice_n and_o therefore_o as_o it_o be_v use_v and_o understand_v of_o our_o adversary_n we_o reject_v both_o the_o name_n and_o thing_n itself_o for_o these_o cause_n first_o no_o angel_n no_o man_n no_o creature_n be_v of_o that_o dignity_n and_o worthiness_n that_o he_o may_v offer_v up_o and_o sacrifice_v the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o the_o priest_n be_v above_o the_o sacrifice_n they_o therefore_o that_o will_v be_v the_o priest_n to_o offer_v christ_n advance_v and_o lift_v up_o themselves_o above_o christ_n second_o if_o christ_n be_v real_o offer_v in_o the_o mass_n than_o he_o be_v kill_v true_o and_o indeed_o for_o a_o real_a sacrifice_n prove_v a_o real_a death_n and_o when_o christ_n be_v sacrifice_v real_o he_o die_v real_o as_o when_o the_o beast_n be_v sacrifice_v they_o be_v kill_v and_o holcot_n one_o of_o the_o schoolman_n say_v if_o there_o have_v be_v a_o thousand_o host_n in_o a_o thousand_o place_n at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o christ_n do_v hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n 3_o christ_n have_v be_v crucify_v in_o a_o thousand_o place_n wherefore_o they_o that_o real_o sacrifice_v our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v in_o that_o act_n real_o and_o wicked_o kill_v he_o so_o that_o the_o priest_n s_o of_o baal_n if_o they_o will_v be_v sacrificer_n of_o christ_n must_v acknowledge_v themselves_o therein_o the_o real_a murderer_n of_o christ._n three_o new_a sacrifice_n be_v not_o to_o be_v institute_v by_o man_n without_o commandment_n of_o god_n as_o moses_n teach_v deut._n 12._o we_o must_v not_o do_v h_o what_o seem_v good_a in_o our_o own_o eye_n but_o take_v heed_n and_o hear_v all_o these_o word_n which_o he_o command_v us._n now_o christ_n never_o say_v sacrifice_v you_o my_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o god_n four_o christ_n take_v the_o bread_n and_o give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n he_o do_v not_o offer_v it_o up_o to_o god_n the_o father_n he_o take_v the_o cup_n and_o bid_v they_o all_o drink_n of_o it_o he_o do_v not_o turn_v himfelfe_n to_o god_n and_o desire_v he_o then_o to_o accept_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n five_o if_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v in_o their_o former_a substance_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n then_o bread_n and_o wine_n only_o be_v offer_v not_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o remain_v for_o christ_n deliver_v 16_o bread_n to_o his_o disciple_n and_o paul_n teach_v that_o it_o be_v the_o bread_n which_o be_v break_v &_o that_o as_o ofren_n asthe_v 〈◊〉_d eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_n of_o this_o cup_n they_o show_v the_o lord_n death_n therefore_o their_o real_a sacrifice_n be_v real_a idolatry_n six_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o supper_n that_o christ_n consecrate_v the_o bread_n apart_o and_o the_o wine_n 〈◊〉_d and_o afterward_o deliver_v they_o both_o apart_o but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v never_o sacrifice_v without_o the_o blood_n nor_o the_o blood_n without_o the_o flesh_n for_o christ_n offer_v upon_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_a the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n together_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o he_o say_v take_v you_o eat_v you_o drink_v you_o not_o take_v you_o to_o offer_v and_o to_o sacrifice_n seven_o the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o one_o offering_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n once_o perform_v and_o offer_v heb._n 10._o we_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o offering_n of_o jesus_n christ_n k_o once_o make_v and_o ver_fw-la 12_o 12._o this_o man_n after_o he_o have_v offer_v one_o saerifice_n for_o sin_n sit_v at_o the_o right_n hnnd_v of_o god_n and_o the_o apostle_n 1_o tim._n 2._o there_o be_v one_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n jesus_n christ_n who_o give_v himself_o a_o ransom_n for_o all_o man_n so_o 1_o john_n 2._o if_o any_o man_n sin_n we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a and_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n likewise_o heb_n 9_o by_o his_o own_o blood_n he_o enter_v in_o once_o unto_o the_o holy_a place_n and_o obtain_v eternal_a redemption_n for_o we_o not_o that_o he_o shall_v offer_v himself_o l_o often_o as_o the_o high_a 12_o priest_n enter_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n every_o year_n with_o other_o blood_n for_o then_o must_v he_o have_v often_o suffer_v since_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n but_o now_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n have_v he_o be_v make_v manifest_a once_o to_o put_v away_o sin_n by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o himself_o we_o have_v plentiful_a testimony_n of_o this_o truth_n in_o this_o epistle_n as_o chap._n x._o where_o remission_n of_o these_o thing_n be_v there_o be_v no_o 18_o more_o offering_n for_o sin_n if_o then_o we_o have_v remission_n by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n all_o other_o sacrifice_n be_v superfluous_a and_o abrogat_fw-la his_o al-sufficient_a sacrifice_n so_o rome_n 6._o in_o that_o he_o die_v he_o die_v for_o sin_n 10_o once_o and_o 1._o pet._n 3._o christ_n also_o have_v once_o suffer_v for_o sin_n the_o just_a for_o the_o uninst_a if_o then_o this_o perfect_a offering_n be_v once_o only_o to_o be_v offer_v than_o he_o be_v not_o offer_v neither_o can_v be_v offer_v again_o in_o the_o mass_n and_o if_o the_o only_a oblation_n of_o christ_n once_o offer_v by_o himself_o be_v sufficient_a all_o other_o oblation_n and_o sacrifice_n be_v vain_a and_o superfluous_a for_o how_o be_v that_o perfect_a which_o be_v often_o repeat_v eight_o to_o make_v a_o lawful_a sacrifice_n there_o be_v require_v necessary_o a_o fit_a minister_n lawful_o call_v of_o god_n for_o 5_o no_o man_n take_v his_o honour_n to_o himself_o but_o he_o that_o be_v call_v of_o god_n as_o be_v aaron_n so_o likewise_o christ_n take_v not_o to_o himself_o this_o honour_n to_o be_v make_v the_o highpriest_n but_o he_o that_o say_v to_o he_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n i_o beget_v thou_o give_v it_o he_o but_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a priest_n
the_o show_n of_o wine_n presence_n he_o be_v not_o personal_o local_o carnal_o corporal_o natural_o real_o substantial_o and_o sensual_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o question_n be_v not_o down_o whether_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v true_a for_o they_o be_v know_v confess_v and_o believe_v so_o that_o as_o he_o be_v the_o truth_n so_o all_o his_o word_n be_v word_n of_o truth_n neither_o be_v the_o question_n whether_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o bare_a sign_n or_o bare_a figure_n we_o say_v christ_n be_v true_o represent_v seal_v and_o exhibit_v neither_o be_v the_o question_n whether_o god'bo_n omnipotent_a and_o almighty_a this_o be_v a_o part_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o a_o article_n of_o christian_n belief_n neither_o be_v the_o question_n simp_o of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n whether_o he_o be_v true_o and_o undoubted_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n we_o acknowledge_v and_o receive_v as_o much_o but_o the_o whole_a question_n be_v of_o the_o meaning_n and_o understand_v of_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n and_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o presence_n we_o confess_v and_o teach_v the_o people_n commit_v unto_o we_o that_o 17_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v true_o very_o and_o indeed_o give_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o true_o eat_v and_o drink_v they_o that_o we_o be_v relieve_v and_o live_v by_o they_o that_o we_o be_v make_v bone_n of_o his_o bone_n that_o christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o he_o yet_o we_o say_v not_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v abolish_v or_o that_o christ_n body_n descend_v from_o heaven_n or_o be_v gross_o and_o corporal_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o be_v teach_v to_o lift_v up_o out_o heart_n to_o heaven_n 3_o where_o christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o there_o to_o feed_v upon_o he_o but_o he_o ere_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n and_o controversy_n between_o us._n the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v that_o after_o 1_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v abolish_v and_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n come_v in_o place_n so_o that_o they_o make_v they_o corporal_o 〈◊〉_d not_o only_o in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v eat_v with_o the_o mouth_n but_o in_o the_o pix_n in_o the_o mass_n and_o in_o their_o solemn_a procession_n where_o be_v neither_o eat_v nor_o drink_v yet_o berengarius_fw-la in_o his_o recantation_n be_v teach_v to_o say_v and_o force_v to_o subscribe_v that_o bereng_n christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n sensible_a or_o sensual_o be_v touch_v with_o the_o singer_n divide_v break_a &_o rend_v with_o the_o tooth_n and_o not_o only_o the_o accident_n more_o over_o they_o make_v it_o to_o be_v eat_v not_o only_o of_o evil_a man_n but_o of_o beast_n and_o to_o fill_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o blasphemy_n to_o be_v cast_v out_o into_o the_o draught_n as_o some_o of_o they_o have_v teach_v and_o affirm_v thus_o than_o the_o difference_n stand_v between_o we_o they_o hold_v that_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v carnal_o eat_v of_o wicked_a man_n without_o faith_n of_o brute_n beast_n without_o reason_n but_o we_o deny_v that_o christ_n be_v thus_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n for_o his_o body_n can_v be_v under_o so_o little_a a_o quantity_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n beside_o it_o be_v impiety_n to_o 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n or_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n can_v be_v true_o receive_v of_o dog_n 〈◊〉_d and_o miso_n be_v chew_v with_o the_o tooth_n swallow_v down_o the_o throat_n digest_v in_o the_o stomach_n and_o be_v cast_v out_o into_o unclean_a place_n this_o we_o deny_v this_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v this_o we_o abhor_v and_o detest_v from_o the_o bottom_n of_o our_o heart_n what_o be_v it_o then_o we_o teach_v and_o profess_v we_o deny_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v carnal_o contain_v under_o the_o show_n and_o shadow_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n we_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v eat_v and_o drunken_a ofwicked_a man_n or_o unreasonable_a creature_n we_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o on_o the_o earth_n in_o pix_n and_o on_o the_o 〈◊〉_d these_o be_v johan_n meat_n for_o the_o mind_n not_o for_o the_o mouth_n for_o faith_n not_o for_o the_o tooth_n for_o our_o belief_n not_o for_o the_o belly_n this_o carnal_a eat_n of_o christ_n be_v presence_n confute_v and_o convince_v by_o many_o reason_n first_o christ_n sit_v down_o at_o the_o table_n and_o the_o disciple_n with_o he_o afterward_o he_o take_v bread_n give_v thanks_n break_v it_o give_v it_o and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n likewise_o he_o take_v and_o give_v the_o cup_n and_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o whereby_o we_o see_v when_o the_o apostle_n receive_v 19_o the_o sacrament_n christ_n sit_v at_o the_o table_n with_o his_o true_a body_n but_o the_o body_n which_o they_o take_v sit_v not_o at_o the_o table_n therefore_o they_o take_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n likewise_o the_o blood_n which_o they_o receive_v be_v not_o in_o the_o body_n which_o sit_v at_o the_o table_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o proper_o christ_n blood_n which_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o real_o and_o actual_o shed_v the_o same_o body_n can_v not_o sit_v at_o the_o table_n &_o not_o sit_v at_o the_o table_n the_o same_o body_n can_v not_o be_v in_o their_o hand_n and_o out_o of_o their_o hand_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v out_o of_o his_o vein_n in_o the_o cup_n and_o in_o his_o vine_n within_o his_o body_n he_o can_v not_o sit_v visible_a at_o the_o table_n and_o be_v invisible_a in_o the_o mouth_n and_o belly_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d wherefore_o the_o real_a presence_n bring_v with_o it_o real_a contradiction_n which_o can_v stand_v together_o second_o the_o end_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v to_o call_v his_o death_n to_o a_o continual_a remembrance_n as_o luk._n 22._o do_v this_o in_o 19_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 11._o you_o show_v the_o lord_n death_n until_o he_o come_v now_o to_o what_o end_n shall_v we_o need_v the_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n if_o he_o be_v corporal_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n if_o he_o be_v take_v in_o the_o hand_n if_o he_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o mouth_n if_o he_o be_v eat_v with_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o to_o to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v we_o show_v the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v if_o he_o come_v 〈◊〉_d and_o be_v present_a bodily_a in_o the_o sacrament_n beside_o the_o wise_a a_o nong_a the_o philosopher_n teach_v we_o that_o memoria_fw-la sense_n be_v of_o thing_n present_a but_o remembrance_n be_v of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v absent_a as_o hope_n be_v of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v to_o come_v not_o see_v 24_o and_o this_o the_o apostle_n teach_v three_o christ_n receive_v a_o true_a body_n withal_o the_o natural_a property_n of_o a_o 〈◊〉_d body_n like_v to_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n sin_v 15_o only_o exc_a pt_v and_o be_v therefore_o call_v the_o son_n of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o son_n of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o son_n of_o man_n our_o brother_n partaker_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v take_v upon_o he_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n and_o not_o the_o angel_n nature_n 39_o to_o be_v visible_a luk._n 24_o 39_o behold_v my_o hand_n and_o my_o foot_n for_o it_o be_v i_o myself_o 〈◊〉_d i_o and_o see_v for_o a_o spirit_n have_v not_o flesh_n and_o bone_n as_o you_o see_v i_o have_v for_o if_o he_o may_v be_v in_o many_o place_n together_o in_o some_o place_n visible_a and_o in_o some_o invisible_a in_o some_o to_o be_v handle_v in_o other_o nor_o to_o be_v handle_v he_o can_v have_v no_o true_a body_n of_o a_o true_a man_n and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o a_o strong_a reason_n it_o be_v not_o feel_v and_o see_v therefore_o no_o human_a body_n the_o disciple_n may_v have_v answer_v unto_o christ_n why_o do_v thou_o bid_v we_o behold_v thy_o hand_n and_o see_v thy_o foot_n and_o handle_v thy_o body_n and_o thereby_o to_o try_v thy_o humanity_n see_v thou_o have_v a_o body_n which_o can_v be_v see_v touch_v or_o handle_v four_o christ_n have_v leave_v the_o earth_n with_o his_o bodily_a presence_n and_o be_v 〈◊〉_d up_o into_o he_o 〈◊〉_d far_o above_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o be_v sit_v do_v une_fw-fr 22_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n as_o act._n 1._o while_o they_o behold_v he_o be_v take_v up_o and_o mar._n 16._o after_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v unto_o they_o he_o be_v receive_v into_o heaven_n and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n so_o act._n 3._o who_o the_o heaven_n must_v contain_v until_o
subject_a to_o the_o pleasure_n of_o every_o priest_n to_o come_v at_o his_o call_n to_o stay_v till_o he_o command_v nay_o to_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v tear_v with_o the_o tooth_n of_o every_o receiver_n wherefore_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o glorify_a body_n can_v be_v ground_v upon_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n this_o be_v my_o body_n neither_o let_v they_o say_v as_o campion_n that_o boast_a champion_n like_o a_o other_o goliath_n x_o challenge_v the_o host_n of_o god_n sometime_o say_v in_o the_o tower-conference_n that_o this_o be_v a_o fallation_n 3_o inasmuch_o as_o his_o glorification_n 〈◊〉_d it_o not_o a_o diverse_a body_n and_o that_o a_o man_n whole_a and_o a_o man_n sick_a at_o sundry_a time_n make_v not_o a_o several_a man_n this_o lesuitical_a device_n have_v no_o colour_n of_o reason_n but_o a_o trick_n of_o evasion_n for_o we_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o difference_n between_o christ_n glorify_a and_o mortal_a body_n but_o of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n whether_o christ_n understand_v his_o natural_a and_o mortal_a body_n wherein_o short_o he_o be_v to_o be_v glorify_v or_o whether_o he_o understand_v it_o of_o his_o body_n glorify_v either_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o one_o or_o of_o the_o other_o or_o of_o both_o or_o rather_o indeed_o of_o neither_o except_o they_o will_v have_v the_o word_n take_v and_o speak_v one_o way_n to_o the_o disciple_n and_o another_o way_n to_o us._n thus_o the_o meaning_n of_o they_o when_o they_o be_v first_o utter_v shall_v be_v this_o be_v my_o mortal_a body_n but_o now_o speak_v to_o we_o take_v in_o another_o sense_n of_o we_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n this_o be_v my_o glorify_a body_n so_o then_o the_o same_o word_n speak_v to_o the_o disciple_n shall_v be_v false_a as_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v they_o and_o the_o disciple_n shall_v be_v deceive_v understand_v they_o as_o we_o do_v take_v they_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o bring_v we_o back_o again_o to_o the_o reproachful_a comparison_n and_o blasphemous_a assertion_n 7._o of_o sundry_a popish_a writer_n to_o compare_v the_o scripture_n to_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n and_o a_o rule_n of_o lead_n that_o they_o may_v be_v expound_v diverse_o and_o frame_v to_o time_n so_o as_o at_o one_o time_n they_o may_v be_v understand_v one_o way_n &_o at_o another_o time_n they_o may_v be_v interpret_v another_o way_n these_o thing_n before_o be_v due_o consider_v we_o may_v safe_o conclude_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o present_a in_o his_o natural_a body_n last_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o natural_a body_n abolish_v the_o light_n of_o reason_n and_o confound_v the_o nature_n of_o thing_n for_o what_o be_v more_o repugnant_a to_o reason_n then_o for_o a_o man_n to_o bear_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o hand_n that_o a_o man_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d up_o himself_o that_o another_o shall_v eat_v he_o yet_o he_o remain_v untouched_a untasted_a and_o uncorrupted_a that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o man_n shall_v be_v visible_a and_o invisible_a present_a &_o absent_a in_o the_o tooth_n of_o the_o disciple_n and_o at_o the_o table_n with_o the_o disciple_n be_v a_o man_n of_o stature_n and_o yet_o be_v contain_v and_o comprehend_v in_o a_o little_a cake_n and_o cantle_n of_o bread_n now_o as_o by_o these_o reason_n and_o sundry_a other_o that_o may_v be_v allege_v the_o real_a presence_n be_v sufficient_o convince_v so_o the_o argument_n bring_v to_o maintain_v and_o uphold_v it_o be_v easy_o answer_v answer_v for_o as_o the_o doctrine_n be_v false_a so_o the_o reason_n be_v weak_a and_o foolish_a first_o they_o object_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o this_o cause_n for_o as_o in_o the_o question_n of_o the_o supremacy_n of_o peter_n pretend_a of_o the_o pope_n usurp_v which_o be_v many_o they_o always_o allege_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o peter_n pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la primo_fw-la feed_v by_o sheep_n so_o do_v they_o deal_v in_o controversy_n of_o the_o supper_n where_o we_o miss_v not_o long_a hoc_fw-la est_fw-la 〈◊〉_d meum_fw-la this_o be_v my_o body_n his_o word_n 1_o say_v they_o be_v true_a therefore_o we_o must_v believe_v they_o he_o be_v a_o man_n of_o his_o word_n therefore_o we_o must_v credit_v he_o if_o then_o we_o be_v deceive_v hold_v his_o body_n to_o be_v present_a he_o have_v deceive_v us._n i_o answer_v the_o question_n be_v not_o of_o the_o truth_n answer_n of_o the_o word_n whether_o they_o be_v true_a or_o false_a but_o of_o the_o interpretation_n and_o meaning_n thereof_o which_o we_o say_v be_v figurative_a and_o yet_o no_o other_o than_o be_v usual_a when_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o other_o sacrament_n to_o the_o church_n 11_o as_o circumcision_n be_v the_o covenant_n the_o lamb_n be_v the_o passover_o the_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n the_o break_n of_o the_o bread_n be_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o rock_n be_v christ_n baptism_n be_v the_o wash_n of_o our_o new-birth_n be_v not_o all_o these_o place_n like_v to_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n institution_n or_o can_v they_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v understand_v 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o proper_o so_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o word_n be_v that_o the_o bread_n which_o he_o have_v take_v break_a and_o give_v be_v a_o sign_n and_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n it_o be_v now_o no_o long_o common_a bread_n but_o be_v presentation_n of_o his_o body_n true_o offer_v to_o all_o and_o true_o give_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a our_o saviour_n christ_n speak_v many_o thing_n to_o his_o disciple_n figurative_o not_o literal_o to_o be_v take_v he_o say_v 13_o they_o be_v the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n a_o city_n set_v on_o a_o hill_n he_o speak_v of_o cut_v off_o the_o hand_n and_o pull_v out_o the_o eye_n he_o call_v himself_o 9_o a_o door_n 1_o a_o vine_n 6_o a_o way_n be_v not_o these_o figurative_a and_o metaphorical_a speech_n again_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n and_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o take_v they_o proper_o beside_o this_o that_o they_o shall_v command_v we_o a_o horrible_a and_o wicked_a thing_n to_o eat_v man_n flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n moreover_o the_o evangelist_n never_o say_v the_o bread_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o his_o body_n or_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n or_o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o bread_n or_o under_o the_o bread_n or_o with_o the_o bread_n all_o the_o circumstance_n teach_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n the_o wine_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o his_o blood_n as_o circumcision_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o covenaunt_n the_o lamb_n a_o sign_n of_o the_o passeover_n the_o rock_n a_o figure_n of_o christ._n last_o as_o christ_n speak_v to_o the_o evil_a servant_n 22_o out_o of_o thy_o own_o mouth_n will_v i_o judge_v thou_o so_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o give_v sentence_n on_o our_o side_n and_o one_o arch-papist_n condemn_v another_o bishop_n fisher_n write_v against_o luther_n affirm_v that_o 1_o no_o man_n can_v prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o any_o priest_n in_o these_o day_n do_v consecrate_v the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o babylon_n lindanus_n among_o the_o rabblement_n of_o tradition_n which_o he_o reckon_v rehearse_v the_o real_a presence_n likewise_o tonstall_n another_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o birth_n hold_v that_o it_o be_v 4._o better_a to_o leave_v every_o man_n to_o his_o own_o conjecture_n as_o they_o be_v before_o the_o counsel_n of_o lateran_n then_o to_o bring_v in_o such_o question_n and_o biel_n a_o man_n of_o the_o same_o stamp_n not_o inferior_a to_o the_o rest_n 46._o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n that_o christ_n body_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o let_v they_o tell_v we_o their_o opinion_n whether_o that_o hildebrand_n hold_v this_o bodily_a presence_n 〈◊〉_d when_o he_o cast_v the_o sacrament_n into_o the_o fire_n contrary_a to_o the_o like_n of_o certain_a cardinal_n present_a with_o he_o thus_o we_o see_v counsel_n sather_n reason_n doctor_n schoolman_n bishop_n cardinal_n pope_n and_o other_o of_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o fight_v against_o the_o 〈◊〉_d prefence_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o overthrow_v it_o second_o they_o object_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n except_o you_o eat_v 53_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o have_v no_o life_n in_o objection_n you_o i_o answer_v these_o word_n be_v not_o understand_v of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o be_v utter_v long_o before_o the_o
promise_n the_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o hope_n the_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n and_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n to_o contend_v and_o strive_v one_o against_o another_o to_o delight_v in_o brawl_a fight_a quarrel_a and_o to_o nourish_v hatred_n malice_n rancour_n spite_n envy_n bite_a and_o backbiting_a one_o of_o another_o if_o ephraim_n be_v set_v against_o 21_o manasses_n and_o manasses_n against_o ephraim_n if_o brother_n be_v divide_v against_o brother_n if_o we_o bite_v one_o at_o another_o let_v we_o take_v heed_n lest_o we_o be_v consume_v one_o of_o another_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v renew_v into_o the_o image_n ofgod_o to_o resemble_v their_o heavenly_a father_n in_o true_a holiness_n and_o do_v all_o wear_v the_o same_o cognizance_n and_o livery_n for_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o mark_n of_o ch._n sheep_n whereby_o they_o be_v know_v and_o discern_v so_o that_o all_o our_o dissension_n division_n rail_n revile_n disgrace_n and_o defacing_n one_o of_o another_o tend_v to_o the_o reproach_n and_o dishonour_n of_o our_o common_a father_n and_o do_v give_v a_o heavy_a testimony_n against_o our_o soul_n with_o god_n and_o his_o elect_a angel_n for_o how_o do_v we_o approach_v unto_o god_n how_o do_v we_o come_v into_o his_o presence_n with_o what_o heart_n do_v we_o pray_v before_o he_o and_o unto_o he_o be_v we_o not_o teach_v 12_o to_o ask_v forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n as_o we_o forgive_v the_o trespass_n do_v unto_o we_o it_o than_o we_o be_v malicious_a and_o envious_a and_o carry_v the_o fresh_a remembrance_n of_o wrong_n in_o our_o heart_n to_o pursue_v they_o with_o revenge_n do_v we_o not_o pray_v against_o ourselves_o do_v we_o not_o beseech_v god_n to_o pour_v out_o vengeance_n upon_o we_o do_v we_o not_o open_v our_o mouth_n to_o our_o own_o destruction_n for_o when_o we_o use_v our_o tongue_n to_o say_v 4_o lord_n forgive_v we_o for_o even_o we_o forgive_v be_v it_o not_o asmuch_o as_n if_o we_o shall_v pray_v forgive_v we_o not_o lord_n for_o we_o do_v not_o we_o will_v not_o forgive_v other_o therefore_o after_o the_o form_n of_o prayer_n give_v to_o the_o disciple_n christ_n add_v if_o you_o do_v forgive_v man_n their_o trespass_n your_o heavenly_a father_n will_v also_o forgive_v you_o but_o if_o you_o do_v not_o forgive_v man_n their_o trepass_n no_o more_o will_v your_o father_n forgive_v you_o your_o trespass_n and_o as_o he_o exhort_v that_o when_o they_o stand_v and_o appear_v before_o the_o altar_n 25_o they_o must_v forgive_v so_o when_o we_o appear_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n we_o must_v forgive_v if_o we_o have_v any_o thing_n against_o any_o man_n that_o our_o father_n also_o which_o be_v in_o heaven_n may_v forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n now_o if_o we_o will_v be_v direct_v to_o know_v whether_o this_o love_n be_v be_v we_o or_o not_o we_o may_v try_v our_o own_o heart_n by_o these_o 4_o holy_a property_n and_o bless_a effect_n describe_v by_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor_o xiii_o love_n say_v he_o suffer_v long_o it_o be_v bountiful_a love_n envy_v not_o love_n do_v not_o boast_v itself_o it_o be_v not_o puff_v up_o it_o disdain_v not_o it_o seek_v not_o her_o own_o thing_n it_o be_v not_o provoke_v to_o anger_n it_o think_v not_o evil_a it_o rejoice_v not_o in_o iniquity_n but_o rejoice_v in_o the_o truth_n it_o suffer_v all_o thing_n it_o believe_v all_o thing_n it_o hope_v all_o thing_n it_o endure_v all_o thing_n here_o we_o may_v see_v what_o manner_n of_o love_n ought_v to_o be_v in_o us._n every_o one_o of_o we_o must_v endeavour_v that_o all_o the_o part_n of_o this_o description_n may_v right_o agree_v to_o every_o one_o of_o we_o and_o true_o be_v find_v in_o we_o towards_o all_o man_n even_o our_o enemy_n as_o we_o see_v jesus_n christ_n have_v leave_v we_o a_o example_n of_o his_o love_n 35_o when_o he_o pray_v for_o his_o enemy_n that_o crucify_a and_o cruel_o entreat_v he_o father_n forgive_v they_o for_o they_o know_v what_o they_o do_v and_o this_o do_v stephen_o to_o those_o that_o stone_v he_o lord_n lay_v not_o this_o sin_n to_o their_o charge_n this_o be_v the_o way_n let_v we_o walk_v in_o it_o this_o be_v their_o practice_n let_v we_o follow_v it_o thus_o we_o have_v show_v the_o necessity_n of_o examination_n of_o ourselves_o before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o declare_v the_o part_n wherein_o it_o stand_v and_o the_o manner_n how_o it_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v if_o we_o come_v furnish_v with_o these_o thing_n with_o save_v knoledg_n with_o iustifieng_v faith_n with_o unfeigned_a repentance_n with_o a_o love_a and_o long_a reconciliation_n toward_o our_o brethren_n among_o who_o we_o live_v have_v as_o much_o 18_o as_o be_v possible_a peace_n with_o all_o man_n yea_o even_o our_o enemy_n let_v we_o not_o abstain_v from_o the_o lord_n table_n by_o reason_n of_o some_o frailty_n and_o infirmity_n in_o we_o for_o god_n cover_v they_o 18_o and_o will_v not_o bring_v they_o into_o remembrance_n as_o we_o see_v 2._o chron_n 30._o a_o multitude_n of_o people_n have_v not_o cleanse_v themselves_o yet_o do_v eat_v the_o passover_o but_o not_o as_o it_o be_v write_v wherefore_o hezekiah_n pray_v for_o they_o say_v the_o good_a god_n be_v merciful_a towards_o he_o that_o prepare_v his_o whole_a hart_n to_o seek_v the_o lord_n god_n the_o god_n of_o his_o father_n though_o he_o be_v not_o cleanse_v according_a to_o the_o purification_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n and_o the_o lord_n hear_v hezekiah_n and_o heal_v the_o people_n where_o we_o see_v that_o because_o their_o hart_n be_v upright_o and_o sincere_a their_o want_n and_o imperfection_n be_v not_o impute_v unto_o they_o for_o god_n respect_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o inward_a part_n and_o pard_n on_v their_o sin_n that_o thus_o prepare_v their_o heart_n to_o seek_v he_o so_o then_o it_o they_o be_v great_o deceive_v that_o think_v they_o honour_v the_o sacrament_n by_o abstain_v from_o it_o it_o be_v not_o honour_v but_o dishonour_v not_o hallow_v but_o profane_v not_o regard_v reverent_o but_o reproach_v grievous_o by_o our_o wilful_a abstinence_n 28_o as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v 1_o cor_fw-la 11._o let_v a_o man_n examine_v himself_o and_o so_o let_v he_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_n of_o this_o cup._n he_o do_v not_o say_v let_v he_o prove_v himself_o and_o so_o let_v he_o abstain_v for_o the_o sacrament_n be_v abuse_v as_o well_o by_o forbear_v have_v examine_v ourselves_o as_o by_o not_o examine_v ourselves_o and_o receive_v unworthy_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o examination_n and_o the_o manner_n to_o be_v observe_v therein_o chap._n 20._o the_o conclusion_n contain_v a_o abridgement_n of_o the_o whole_a treatise_n the_o effect_n of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v deliver_v hitherto_o in_o these_o book_n may_v thus_o be_v gather_v into_o a_o short_a sum_n and_o abridgement_n we_o have_v book_n declare_v that_o god_n in_o all_o time_n and_o age_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o first_o be_v of_o our_o first_o parent_n have_v to_o his_o word_n and_o promise_n annex_v sacrament_n as_o seal_n of_o assurance_n etc._n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o they_o thereby_o magnifieng_v his_o own_o mercy_n towards_o his_o people_n show_v our_o weakness_n and_o unworthines_n and_o condemn_v such_o as_o oftentimes_o desire_v to_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n but_o esteem_v little_a of_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n whereas_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o author_n they_o be_v instrument_n of_o the_o same_o grace_n their_o whole_a force_n and_o effect_n depend_v on_o god_n they_o require_v faith_n 2_o to_o be_v mingle_v with_o they_o &_o they_o profit_v not_o always_o at_o the_o very_a moment_n of_o hear_v and_o receive_v notwithstanding_o some_o difference_n we_o find_v between_o they_o as_o namely_o in_o the_o great_a necessity_n of_o the_o word_n then_o of_o the_o sacrament_n infidel_n be_v never_o bar_v from_o hear_v the_o word_n when_o they_o will_v become_v 24_o hearer_n thereof_o and_o whereas_o the_o word_n affect_v one_o only_a of_o the_o sense_n to_o wit_n the_o hear_n the_o sacrament_n 〈◊〉_d offer_v to_o the_o eye_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o ear_n and_o so_o in_o some_o sort_n become_v more_o effectual_a than_o the_o word_n touch_v the_o word_n sacrament_n it_o be_v draw_v from_o martial_a discipline_n and_o proper_o signify_v the_o soldier_n oath_n whereby_o he_o bind_v himself_o to_o his_o captain_n which_o word_n be_v use_v by_o the_o old_a latin_a interpreter_n be_v now_o become_v ordinary_a and_o common_a in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o mention_v in_o so_o many_o syllable_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o howsoever_o the_o word_n be_v often_o take_v in_o a_o large_a and_o general_a signification_n yet_o
testament_n and_o the_o new_a they_o have_v sundry_a significant_a sign_n and_o ceremony_n who_o interpretation_n be_v not_o easy_o know_v unto_o they_o three_o see_v god_n have_v give_v unto_o we_o two_o sign_n and_o add_v two_o seal_n to_o his_o word_n and_o write_n we_o ought_v to_o have_v the_o strong_a faith_n in_o his_o mircyfull_a promise_n for_o wherefore_o have_v he_o double_v the_o sign_n but_o that_o we_o shall_v increase_v in_o faith_n and_o as_o it_o be_v double_a our_o assurance_n of_o his_o grace_n last_o this_o number_n of_o two_o overthrow_v the_o number_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n maintain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o just_a number_n be_v 2._o first_o broach_v by_o peter_n lombard_n afterward_o ratysy_v in_o the_o counsel_n of_o florence_n and_o last_o establish_v in_o the_o counsel_n of_o trent_n and_o be_v now_o become_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o that_o counterfect_a church_n for_o beside_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n which_o we_o receive_v they_o forge_v have_v install_v into_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n confirmation_n penance_n matrimony_n order_n and_o extreme_a unction_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o sacrament_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o evidence_n of_o sundry_a reason_n and_o firist_n of_o all_o sacrament_n confirmation_n can_v be_v lift_v up_o into_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o sit_v down_o in_o this_o chair_n of_o honour_n because_o it_o want_v the_o institution_n of_o christ_n it_o want_v a_o outward_a sign_n it_o have_v no_o word_n to_o warrant_v it_o or_o promise_v of_o blessing_n for_o howsoever_o xvii_o the_o apostle_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n those_o miraculous_a gift_n be_v now_o withdraw_v from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n last_o they_o have_v advance_v it_o above_o baptism_n they_o administer_v it_o in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n and_o hallow_z the_o greasy_a oil_n to_o purify_v soul_n and_o body_n second_o sacrament_n their_o popish_a penance_n institute_v by_o bodily_a chastisement_n to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o sin_n to_o god_n be_v no_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n nor_o any_o sacred_a thing_n be_v thus_o understand_v for_o we_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o satisfaction_n 7_o for_o sin_n wherein_o god_n delight_v and_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n 〈◊〉_d but_o only_o the_o death_n and_o obedience_n of_o christ_n beside_o true_a repentance_n have_v be_v preach_v and_o practise_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n after_o that_o sin_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n furthermore_o their_o penance_n have_v no_o visible_a sign_n as_o baptism_n and_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v three_o sacrament_n matrimony_n albeit_o it_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n honourable_a 4_o among_o all_o estate_n yet_o can_v be_v no_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o be_v institute_v before_o xviii_o the_o law_n it_o be_v ratify_v among_o the_o infidel_n which_o be_v no_o member_n of_o the_o church_n it_o have_v no_o promise_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n join_v to_o it_o and_o albeit_o it_o be_v honourable_a in_o all_o 37_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a in_o all_o last_o the_o roman_a church_n esteem_v it_o as_o a_o unclean_a thing_n a_o profanation_n of_o holy_a order_n a_o live_n in_o the_o flesh_n so_o that_o as_o with_o one_o hand_n they_o advance_v it_o to_o a_o great_a dignity_n with_o the_o other_o hand_n they_o cast_v it_o down_o with_o great_a disgrace_n and_o contempt_n as_o unworthy_a of_o the_o high_a and_o holy_a priesthood_n four_o order_n come_v in_o the_o next_o sacrament_n place_n which_o be_v the_o office_n and_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n but_o no_o sacrament_n or_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n for_o then_o according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o order_n we_o shall_v multiply_v the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n neither_o have_v they_o any_o outward_a element_n and_o visible_a sign_n last_o we_o be_v come_v to_o extreme_a unction_n which_o we_o suffer_v not_o to_o sacrament_n mask_v under_o the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n but_o pull_v off_o the_o vizard_n thereof_o because_o the_o church_n have_v the_o use_n of_o anoint_v 14_o so_o long_o as_o it_o retain_v the_o miraculous_a gift_n of_o heal_v beside_o it_o have_v no_o word_n ofinstitution_n to_o warrant_v the_o continual_a practice_n of_o it_o until_o the_o second_o come_v of_o christ_n wherefore_o see_v the_o word_n of_o god_n teach_v the_o number_n of_o two_o sacrament_n only_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n instruct_v her_o child_n in_o the_o number_n of_o 7._o sacrament_n neither_o more_o nor_o less_o they_o must_v pardon_v we_o if_o we_o harken_v rather_o to_o the_o scripture_n then_o to_o their_o tradition_n rather_o to_o god_n then_o to_o man_n rather_o to_o the_o truth_n then_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n hitherto_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o general_a of_o their_o part_n their_o use_n their_o number_n now_o we_o book_n come_v to_o speak_v of_o they_o in_o particular_a first_o of_o baptism_n then_o of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o howsoever_o baptism_n have_v sundry_a signification_n yet_o as_o it_o signify_v that_o wash_n with_o water_n which_o serve_v to_o seal_v the_o covenant_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n ap_fw-mi it_o be_v the_o first_o sacrament_n wherein_o by_o the_o outward_a wash_n of_o the_o body_n with_o water_n once_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o inward_a cleanse_n of_o the_o soul_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v represent_v this_o descrption_n teach_v that_o such_o as_o be_v not_o yet_o baptize_v 48_o be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n that_o albeit_o dip_v be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o baptism_n yet_o wash_v with_o water_n 26_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o this_o sacrament_n that_o such_o as_o be_v once_o baptize_v be_v not_o to_o be_v rebaptise_v albeit_o they_o have_v be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n and_o that_o whosoever_o be_v baptize_v have_v make_v a_o solemn_a covenant_n to_o profess_v the_o christian_a religion_n now_o q_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v in_o baptism_n as_o we_o do_v before_o general_o in_o a_o sacrament_n these_o two_o thing_n his_o part_n and_o his_o use_n the_o part_n of_o baptism_n be_v outward_a and_o inward_a the_o outward_a part_n 4_o be_v these_o four_o the_o first_o outward_a part_n be_v the_o minister_n as_o the_o messenger_n of_o god_n for_o baptism_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o 19_o minystry_n and_o god_n have_v join_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n &_o sacrament_n together_o wherefore_o the_o minister_n must_v be_v careful_a and_o not_o careless_a in_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o osfice_n who_o be_v to_o sanctify_v the_o water_n and_o to_o wash_v the_o party_n moreover_o the_o people_n be_v direct_v to_o who_o to_o resort_v when_o they_o have_v child_n to_o be_v baptize_v last_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n profane_a baptism_n when_o they_o appoint_v midwife_n and_o private_a person_n to_o baptize_v child_n the_o second_o outward_a part_n 19_o be_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n which_o be_v as_o the_o form_n of_o this_o sacrament_n the_o three_o part_n be_v the_o 36_o element_n of_o water_n which_o be_v the_o matter_n whereof_o baptism_n consist_v whosoever_o therefore_o baptise_v with_o any_o other_o liquorthen_a with_o water_n as_o with_o blood_n with_o sand_n with_o snow_n with_o milk_n or_o such_o like_a matter_n do_v frustrate_a baptism_n and_o make_v it_o a_o idle_a ceremony_n again_o all_o popish_a corruption_n add_v and_o annex_v to_o this_o sacrament_n contrary_a to_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o cream_n cross_n censor_n taper_n spittle_n salt_n 26_o and_o such_o like_a unsavoury_a trumpery_n be_v 〈◊〉_d have_v also_o a_o superstitious_a opinion_n of_o holiness_n and_o worship_n join_v with_o they_o also_o if_o water_n be_v a_o outward_a part_n the_o want_n of_o wash_v with_o water_n can_v hinder_v the_o salvation_n of_o such_o as_o die_v without_o baptism_n all_o perish_v not_o under_o the_o law_n that_o die_v without_o 5_o circumcision_n god_n be_v not_o more_o rigorous_a under_o the_o gospel_n this_o therefore_o be_v a_o bloody_a and_o uncomfortable_a doctrine_n to_o be_v abandon_v and_o abjure_v of_o all_o parent_n of_o all_o childeren_n of_o all_o christian_n the_o four_o outward_a part_n of_o baptism_n be_v the_o body_n that_o be_v wash_v now_o such_o as_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v must_v be_v within_o the_o covenant_n these_o be_v 36_o either_o man_n and_o woman_n of_o ripe_a year_n or_o else_o the_o infant_n of_o such_o who_o have_v interest_n in_o baptism_n as_o well_o as_o their_o parent_n this_o condemn_v the_o romyshe_a practice_n of_o baptise_v bell_n and_o serve_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o great_a love_n of_o god_n to_o all_o
our_o salvation_n for_o twelve_o he_o that_o have_v the_o son_n have_v life_n he_o that_o have_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v not_o life_n the_o last_o inward_a part_n be_v the_o faith_n full_a receiver_n who_o stretch_v forth_o the_o hand_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o lay_v hold_v on_o christ_n and_o all_o his_o save_a grace_n for_o no_o man_n can_v communicate_v with_o his_o body_n but_o the_o same_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o benefit_n let_v we_o all_o prepare_v the_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n i_o of_o god_n elect_v and_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o hypocrite_n and_o unbeliever_n can_v possible_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n these_o be_v the_o four_o inward_a part_n also_o of_o the_o lord_n supper_n the_o similitude_n and_o relation_n supper_n of_o the_o outward_a and_o inward_a part_n one_o to_o another_o stand_v in_o this_o manner_n even_o as_o the_o minister_n by_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n offer_v and_o give_v bread_n and_o wine_n to_o the_o communicant_n to_o feed_v the_o reupon_o bodily_a so_o the_o father_n by_o the_o spirit_n offer_v and_o exhibit_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n jesus_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o feed_v upon_o they_o spiritual_o thus_o much_o of_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n now_o follow_v the_o use_n to_o be_v unfold_v the_o three_z use_n &_o profit_n which_o we_o reap_v by_o the_o lord_n sup_v be_v special_a three_o first_o to_o show_v forth_o with_o praise_n and_o thanks_o give_v the_o death_n and_o the_o suffering_n of_o chri_fw-la who_o his_o own_o self_n bear_v our_o sin_n in_o his_o body_n on_o the_o tree_n by_o who_o stripe_n 24_o we_o be_v heal_v so_o that_o we_o have_v the_o chief_a cause_n in_o our_o self_n which_o do_v crucify_v christ_n second_o to_o teach_v our_o comunion_n which_o christ_n be_v make_v flesh_n xxx_o of_o his_o flesh_n &_o bone_n of_o his_o bone_n hence_o we_o learn_v that_o all_o the_o godly_a and_o be_v leever_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o grace_n this_o be_v matter_n of_o great_a comfort_n in_o our_o manifold_a trial_n and_o tentation_n that_o we_o be_v join_v to_o ch._n as_o member_n to_o the_o head_n 38_o and_o therefore_o neither_o life_n nor_o death_n nor_o angel_n nor_o principality_n nor_o power_n nor_o thing_n present_a nor_o thing_n to_o come_v nor_o hight_v nor_o depth_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o l._n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o ungodly_a and_o unbeliever_n have_v no_o part_n or_o portion_n in_o chri_fw-la and_o his_o grace_n they_o be_v as_o branch_n 6_o cut_v off_o which_o wither_v and_o man_n gather_v they_o to_o cast_v they_o into_o the_o fire_n and_o to_o burn_v they_o 3_o to_o declare_v and_o testify_v our_o communion_n fellowship_n and_o 17_o agreement_n with_o our_o brethren_n meet_v together_o at_o the_o same_o table_n and_o partake_v together_o of_o the_o same_o supper_n wherefore_o see_v we_o have_v not_o only_o a_o union_n with_o christ_n but_o a_o comunion_n among_o our_o self_n we_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o church_n to_o serve_v one_o another_o in_o all_o duty_n of_o love_n to_o instruct_v they_o that_o be_v ignorant_a to_o raise_v they_o that_o be_v fall_v and_o to_o bind_v up_o the_o break_a heart_a to_o reconcile_v ourselves_o one_o to_o ward_n another_o and_o to_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n hitherto_o we_o have_v handle_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n declare_v what_o it_o be_v what_o be_v the_o part_n and_o use_v thereof_o the_o preparation_n to_o this_o work_n follow_v 28_o consist_v in_o the_o examination_n of_o ourselves_o and_o try_v our_o own_o heart_n by_o the_o touchstone_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n this_o duty_n be_v very_o necessary_a to_o be_v perform_v of_o we_o 9_o for_o the_o hart_n of_o man_n be_v deceitful_a above_o all_o thing_n and_o the_o secret_a corner_n of_o it_o past_o find_v out_o we_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o god_n in_o this_o business_n great_a be_v the_o profit_n which_o we_o reap_v &_o receive_v if_o we_o come_v right_o and_o 〈◊〉_d prepare_v great_a be_v the_o punishment_n procure_v by_o want_n of_o this_o try_v all_o and_o examination_n and_o the_o 14_o sacrament_n itself_o be_v defile_v by_o unworthy_a receive_n this_o preparation_n principal_o stand_v in_o these_o 4._o point_n in_o the_o 3_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o of_o ourselves_o especial_o of_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o a_o 5_o lively_a faith_n in_o christ_n see_v every_o one_o receive_v so_o much_o as_o he_o believe_v he_o receive_v in_o repentance_n 6_o from_o dead_a work_n and_o last_o in_o 23_o reconciliation_n toward_o our_o brethren_n have_v peace_n 18_o with_o all_o man_n and_o love_n toward_o our_o enemy_n thus_o i_o have_v open_v plain_o yet_o true_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o teach_v in_o the_o reform_a church_n i_o have_v disclose_v some_o part_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n and_o discover_v and_o lay_v open_a the_o skirt_n of_o that_o great_a idol_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o reproach_n of_o christian_n the_o scorn_n of_o the_o gentile_n the_o offence_n of_o the_o weak_a and_o the_o occasion_n of_o ruin_n to_o many_o that_o stumble_v thereat_o to_o their_o own_o confusion_n the_o lord_n god_n high_a possessor_n of_o heaven_n &_o earth_n and_o preserver_n of_o his_o people_n that_o call_v upon_o he_o put_v it_o into_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o christian_n prince_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o pull_v down_o this_o abominable_a idol_n that_o have_v advance_v itself_o against_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o deface_v this_o filthy_a monster_n that_o have_v deceive_v many_o who_o trust_v in_o it_o the_o same_o lord_n vouchsafe_v to_o reveal_v his_o truth_n to_o the_o ignorant_a to_o establish_v they_o that_o be_v weak_a and_o to_o confound_v all_o obstinate_a enemy_n to_o his_o truth_n to_o their_o prince_n and_o to_o their_o country_n for_o jesus_n christ_n sake_n amen_o amen_o finis_fw-la a_o corollary_n the_o apostle_n paul_n christian_n reader_n prophesieng_v of_o these_o last_o time_n in_o which_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v reveil_v 2._o declare_v that_o his_o come_n shall_v be_v by_o the_o effectual_a work_n of_o satan_n withal_o power_n sign_n lie_v wonder_n &_o in_o all_o deceivablenes_n of_o unrighteousness_n that_o so_o they_o may_v be_v damn_v which_o believe_v not_o the_o truth_n but_o have_v pleasure_n in_o unrighteousness_n in_o this_o description_n the_o effectual_a work_n of_o this_o 〈◊〉_d be_v set_v down_o but_o it_o be_v in_o those_o which_o 〈◊〉_d for_o as_o god_n impart_v his_o 25._o power_n to_o his_o minister_n and_o endue_v they_o with_o his_o spirit_n to_o save_v such_o as_o believe_v so_o do_v satan_n after_o a_o apish_a imitation_n give_v power_n to_o his_o instrument_n and_o breathe_v his_o spirit_n upon_o they_o to_o condemn_v such_o 〈◊〉_d receive_v not_o the_o truth_n the_o manner_n and_o mean_n of_o antichrist_n prevail_a in_o the_o child_n of_o world_n disobedience_n be_v double_a to_o wit_n by_o work_n and_o by_o word_n his_o work_n be_v with_o great_a power_n which_o be_v see_v by_o sign_n and_o lie_a wonder_n now_o who_o it_o be_v in_o our_o day_n that_o boast_v of_o wonder_n and_o i_o wot_v not_o what_o miracle_n who_o make_v the_o power_n of_o work_a sign_n and_o miracle_n 14_o a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n who_o glory_n that_o they_o can_v every_o day_n nay_o every_o hour_n of_o the_o day_n miraculous_o transubstantiate_v the_o bread_n &_o wine_n into_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o pretend_v that_o their_o real_a presence_n their_o 〈◊〉_d image_n their_o private_a 21_o mass_n &_o other_o like_a superstition_n have_v be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n from_o heaven_n be_v not_o this_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v the_o pope_n for_o her_o head_n 31_o her_o spouse_n and_o her_o foundation_n and_o be_v he_o not_o discern_v by_o this_o note_n among_o other_o to_o be_v that_o very_a antichrist_n describe_v in_o scripture_n prophesy_v to_o come_v in_o the_o world_n 〈◊〉_d now_o to_o the_o church_n and_o feel_v of_o every_o christian_n wherefore_o let_v we_o careful_o beware_v 〈◊〉_d such_o sign_n and_o wonder_n carry_v away_o our_o eye_n and_o steal_v away_o our_o heart_n from_o the_o simplicity_n and_o sincerity_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o second_o mean_n of_o his_o proceed_n and_o prevail_a be_v by_o word_n to_o wit_n by_o deceivablenes_n of_o unrighteousness_n he_o be_v indeed_o a_o enemy_n to_o christ_n and_o to_o his_o church_n how_o beit_v not_o open_a but_o secret_a not_o show_v
be_v deceive_v the_o greek_n use_v not_o the_o same_o form_n that_o we_o do_v yet_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o they_o consecrate_v thus_o he_o conclude_v the_o whole_a matter_n with_o a_o ignoramus_n unto_o these_o head_n before_o remember_v we_o may_v also_o add_v many_o foolish_a frivolous_a and_o ridiculous_a question_n dispute_v among_o they_o as_o whether_o in_o the_o sacrament_n papist_n the_o foot_n of_o christ_n be_v confound_v with_o his_o face_n his_o hand_n with_o his_o head_n and_o whether_o one_o part_n be_v distinguish_v from_o another_o whether_o x_o the_o host_n fall_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n fall_v and_o whether_o it_o be_v move_v to_o and_o fro_o as_o oft_o as_o the_o host_n be_v move_v whethe_v it_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o host_n to_o be_v eat_v after_o a_o 〈◊〉_d have_v vomit_v it_o up_o or_o a_o drunken_a man_n in_o his_o drunkenness_n whether_o christ_n leave_v heaven_n to_o come_v into_o the_o place_n of_o bread_n whether_o in_o come_v he_o pass_v through_o the_o air_n whether_o he_o forsake_v the_o earth_n again_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o show_v of_o bread_n be_v touch_v with_o the_o tooth_n or_o whether_o he_o go_v down_o into_o the_o stomach_n how_o long_o he_o stay_v in_o the_o stomach_n whether_o he_o tarry_v and_o wait_v his_o attendance_n there_o till_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n be_v digest_v and_o whether_o he_o change_v himself_o at_o such_o time_n into_o the_o foul_a or_o body_n of_o the_o communicant_a or_o whether_o he_o vanish_v into_o nothing_o or_o else_o return_v to_o heaven_n they_o make_v a_o quaere_fw-la likewise_o when_o the_o sacrament_n begin_v to_o be_v god_n how_o long_o it_o continue_v god_n when_o it_o be_v god_n and_o when_o it_o be_v no_o god_n when_o we_o may_v adore_v and_o how_o long_o we_o may_v adore_v it_o without_o danger_n and_o so_o safe_o cease_v and_o leave_v off_o whether_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n 30_o have_v dimension_n of_o quantity_n proportion_n of_o body_n and_o distance_n of_o part_n one_o from_o another_o as_o between_o eye_n and_o eye_n ear_n and_o ear_n head_n and_o foot_n as_o it_o be_v in_o other_o naturell_n body_n whether_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n joh._n 6._o gabriel_n biell_n cusanus_fw-la caietan_n lyra_n and_o other_o deny_v it_o but_o sanders_n and_o bellarmine_n 5_o hold_v otherwise_o &_o go_v about_o to_o confute_v the_o former_a again_o whether_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n may_v be_v bread_n of_o any_o kind_n of_o grain_n and_o corn_n or_o only_o of_o wheaten_a bread_n some_o hold_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o sacrament_n must_v only_o be_v make_v of_o wheat_n as_o scotus_n some_o of_o wheat_n or_o barley_n as_o albertus_n and_o thomas_n de_fw-fr argentina_n other_o hold_v consecration_n right_o to_o be_v make_v 3_o in_o any_o usual_a and_o common_a bread_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v as_o caietan_n they_o can_v agree_v likewise_o whether_o the_o priest_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o his_o creator_n with_o a_o thousand_o such_o question_n or_o rather_o foolery_n they_o blot_v paper_n waste_a time_n and_o weary_a the_o reader_n never_o know_v nor_o hear_v off_o in_o ancient_a writer_n no_o not_o 800._o year_n after_o christ_n which_o argue_v that_o they_o never_o dream_v of_o any_o carnal_a presence_n but_o not_o to_o stand_v upon_o all_o the_o the_o contradiction_n among_o they_o which_o be_v without_o end_n and_o without_o 〈◊〉_d we_o expound_v will_v come_v to_o the_o m_o word_n of_o institution_n which_o albeit_o they_o be_v short_a and_o easy_a clear_a and_o evident_a in_o themselves_o yet_o they_o have_v corrupt_v they_o with_o many_o gloze_n and_o cross_v one_o another_o in_o their_o perverse_a interpretation_n christ_n say_v of_o his_o last_o supper_n when_o he_o have_v take_v bless_a and_o break_v the_o bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v or_o give_v for_o you_o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o in_o like_a manner_n he_o take_v the_o cup_n say_v this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n this_o do_v as_o oft_o as_o you_o drink_v it_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v this_o bread_n be_v a_o sign_n or_o sacrament_n of_o my_o body_n which_o be_v deliver_v to_o death_n for_o you_o and_o for_o your_o salvation_n christ_n take_v nothing_o but_o bread_n he_o break_v that_o which_o he_o take_v he_o deliver_v that_o which_o he_o break_v as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 16_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n so_o touch_v the_o other_o part_n when_o he_o say_v this_o cup_n he_o mean_v this_o wine_n in_o the_o cup_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o our_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n now_o to_o be_v fulfil_v of_o our_o communion_n and_o participation_n of_o christ_n with_o all_o his_o benefit_n this_o interpretation_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n to_o the_o proportion_n of_o faith_n and_o to_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n who_o call_v the_o sacrament_n a_o representation_n a_o remembrance_n a_o image_n a_o token_n a_o sign_n a_o figure_n and_o such_o like_a but_o because_o our_o adversary_n can_v abide_v no_o figure_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n teach_v who_o think_v it_o no_o heresy_n to_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n by_o a_o figure_n tertullian_n one_o of_o the_o most_o ancient_a say_v 4_o christ_n receive_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o same_o be_v divide_v unto_o his_o disciple_n make_v it_o his_o body_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n and_o chrysostome_n 83_o if_o christ_n die_v not_o who_o token_n &_o sign_n be_v this_o sacrifice_n ambrose_n also_o have_v these_o word_n 9_o after_o consecration_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v signisied_a add_v unto_o these_o the_o testimony_n of_o augustine_n 12_o who_o teach_v the_o people_n thus_o christ_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n commend_v and_o give_v the_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n &_o blood_n and_o epist_n 23._o add_v bonifac._n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v after_o a_o sort_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o another_o place_n the_o lord_n doubt_v not_o to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o he_o give_v a_o token_n of_o his_o body_n last_o the_o gloze_v upon_o the_o canon_n dissent_v not_o herein_o from_o the_o father_n 2._o dicitur_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la sed_fw-la improprie_fw-la ut_fw-la sit_fw-la sensus_fw-la it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o unproperlie_o the_o meaning_n be_v it_o be_v call_v christ_n body_n that_o be_v it_o signify_v christ_n body_n gelasius_n say_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n eutich_n there_o remain_v still_o in_o the_o sacra_fw-la the_o nature_n or_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o conclude_v augustin_n say_v else_o where_o infant_n quod_fw-la videtis_fw-la panis_fw-la est_fw-la that_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o you_o see_v be_v bread_n he_o do_v not_o say_v it_o seem_v bread_n and_o be_v none_o or_o it_o be_v the_o show_n and_o form_n of_o bread_n but_o he_o speak_v evident_o it_o be_v indeed_o bread_n now_o our_o adversary_n that_o can_v abide_v no_o token_n no_o figure_n no_o sign_n no_o signification_n in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o supper_n be_v notwithstanding_o drive_v to_o make_v so_o diverse_a so_o doubtful_a so_o institution_n many_o so_o monstrous_a so_o mad_a and_o senseless_a exposition_n of_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n as_o all_o the_o trope_n figure_n metaphor_n allusion_n allegory_n and_o rhetoric_n in_o the_o world_n will_v not_o serve_v they_o to_o salve_v up_o the_o branch_n of_o their_o interpretation_n of_o these_o short_a and_o few_o word_n first_o they_o find_v in_o the_o word_n bread_n a_o whole_a swarm_n of_o figure_n they_o say_v the_o sacrament_n be_v call_v bread_n sometime_o because_o it_o be_v bread_n before_o sometime_o because_o a_o infidel_n take_v it_o to_o be_v bread_n sometime_o because_o the_o accident_n and_o show_n of_o bread_n remain_v sometime_o because_o the_o same_o accident_n nourish_v the_o body_n by_o a_o miracle_n as_o if_o it_o be_v bread_n sometime_o because_o it_o be_v that_o spiritual_a bread_n supper_n which_o come_v from_o heaven_n and_o last_o because_o the_o bread_n sometime_o return_v again_o after_o consecration_n again_o these_o word_n lie_v together_o he_o take_v he_o bless_v he_o break_v go_v before_o the_o word_n which_o christ_n speak_v be_v strange_o expound_v on_o this_o manner_n he_o take_v the_o bread_n he_o bless_v that_o be_v he_o turn_v and_o change_v the_o bread_n he_o break_v that_o be_v the_o accident_n or_o show_n of_o bread_n and_o sometime_o they_o understand_v it_o seem_v to_o be_v break_v so_o that_o when_o the_o evangelist_n say_v he_o
break_v they_o say_v the_o meaning_n be_v he_o do_v not_o break_v but_o seem_v so_o to_o do_v touch_v the_o next_o word_n this_o the_o pronoune_n demonstrative_a they_o say_v sometime_o point_v out_o the_o bread_n as_o bonaventure_n this_o deliver_v sometime_o they_o say_v it_o demonstrate_v not_o the_o bread_n but_o individum_fw-la vagum_fw-la that_o be_v neither_o bread_n nor_o any_o certain_a determine_a thing_n else_o but_o a_o thing_n leave_v at_o random_n and_o at_o large_a in_o generality_n but_o what_o thing_n particular_o they_o can_v tell_v sometime_o they_o say_v it_o demonstrate_v nothing_o as_o 4_o josephus_n angle_n and_o durand_n miss_v not_o much_o of_o that_o mark_n when_o he_o say_v that_o by_o this_o nothing_o be_v signify_v other_o say_v it_o demonstrate_v the_o body_n &_o so_o they_o make_v christ_n to_o speak_v foolish_o this_o body_n be_v my_o body_n and_o beside_o by_o this_o interpretation_n it_o shall_v be_v his_o body_n before_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n bellarmine_n as_o he_o confess_v the_o papist_n his_o good_a brother_n agree_v not_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o word_n so_o he_o invent_v a_o new_a and_o strange_a exposition_n never_o hear_v off_o before_o in_o the_o church_n or_o out_o of_o the_o church_n in_o jest_n or_o in_o earnest_n among_o the_o learned_a or_o unlearned_a that_o be_v 11_o hoc_fw-la edulium_fw-la that_o be_v this_o food_n be_v my_o body_n this_o drink_n be_v my_o blood_n and_o yet_o what_o food_n it_o be_v and_o what_o drink_v it_o be_v when_o that_o word_n be_v utter_v he_o dare_v not_o to_o determine_v thomas_n of_o aquine_n leave_v it_o more_o at_o large_a with_o who_o this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o 6_o hoc_fw-la contentum_fw-la that_o be_v that_o which_o be_v contain_v under_o these_o show_n gregorius_n de_fw-fr valentia_n after_o his_o fashion_n say_v christ_n mean_v that_o which_o he_o take_v into_o his_o hand_n yet_o he_o hold_v he_o mean_v not_o bread_n so_o that_o by_o this_o reason_n without_o reason_n christ_n take_v not_o bread_n into_o his_o hand_n scotus_n understand_v hoc_fw-la ens_fw-la that_o be_v this_o general_a thing_n that_o have_v a_o be_v but_o what_o it_o be_v when_o they_o shall_v declare_v they_o stick_v fast_o in_o the_o mire_n of_o their_o own_o device_n moreover_o touch_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o next_o word_n be_v they_o likewise_o muster_v a_o army_n of_o many_o figure_n sometime_o they_o expound_v it_o this_o shall_v be_v as_o occam_n sometime_o they_o understand_v thereby_o be_v make_v as_o bonoventure_o blunder_v at_o all_o adventure_n but_o bellarmine_n refall_v both_o these_o sometime_o they_o mean_v this_o shall_v be_v transubstantiate_v and_o change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n furthermore_o the_o word_n follow_v be_v give_v they_o understand_v shall_v be_v give_v be_v break_v they_o expound_v shall_v be_v break_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o they_o expound_v sacrifice_v i_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o thus_o they_o rove_v and_o wander_v up_o and_o down_o as_o man_n that_o have_v lose_v the_o right_a way_n and_o yet_o will_v be_v go_v rather_o than_o stand_v still_o wherefore_o by_o these_o collection_n we_o see_v that_o these_o word_n which_o stand_v in_o construction_n and_o order_n together_o he_o take_v bless_a break_v and_o give_v they_o expound_v on_o this_o manner_n he_o take_v the_o interpretation_n bread_n he_o bless_v it_o quite_o and_o clean_o away_o and_o in_o place_n thereof_o put_v a_o other_o substance_n he_o break_v the_o show_n appearance_n and_o accident_n of_o bread_n &_o then_o he_o give_v they_o his_o body_n behold_v in_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n how_o many_o shape_n form_n figure_n nay_o falsehood_n they_o have_v invent_v and_o so_o invert_v they_o and_o yet_o they_o say_v they_o must_v be_v take_v proper_o without_o any_o manner_n of_o figure_n to_o conclude_v this_o point_n i_o wilgive_v a_o short_a but_o most_o sweet_a taste_n of_o the_o popish_a divinity_n teach_v in_o school_n in_o church_n in_o monastery_n in_o seminary_n and_o in_o all_o their_o meeting_n by_o their_o schoolman_n canonist_n doctor_n preacher_n and_o bishop_n when_o the_o euange_fw-mi list_v report_n that_o christ_n have_v take_v bread_n break_v it_o bless_a and_o give_v it_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n give_v for_o you_o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o their_o interpretation_n must_v be_v this_o christ_n after_o his_o last_o supper_n take_v bread_n into_o his_o hand_n but_o bless_v it_o to_o nothing_o he_o break_v only_o certain_a shex_n of_o bread_n and_o give_v they_o his_o natural_a body_n say_v unto_o they_o this_o which_o i_o have_v in_o my_o hand_n whether_o it_o be_v bread_n or_o not_o you_o can_v tell_v sure_o food_n it_o be_v but_o be_v it_o what_o it_o may_v be_v it_o be_v transubstantiate_v and_o turn_v into_o my_o body_n and_o therefore_o take_v it_o and_o offer_v it_o up_o a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n for_o quick_a and_o dead_a and_o so_o sacrifice_v i_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o never_o be_v there_o such_o fond_a and_o fantastical_a figure_n hear_v off_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n never_o be_v such_o vanity_n invent_v never_o be_v there_o so_o great_a confusion_n of_o tongue_n at_o the_o build_n of_o babel_n how_o much_o better_o be_v it_o for_o they_o to_o forsake_v these_o fable_n and_o device_n of_o their_o own_o and_o to_o say_v plain_o evident_o simple_o direct_o and_o distinct_o with_o maximus_n the_o greek_a scoliast_n zumbola_n tauta_fw-la alla_fw-mi ouk_fw-mi aletheia_fw-la that_o be_v these_o be_v token_n but_o not_o the_o truth_n itself_o and_o with_o tertullian_n 4_o this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v this_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n the_o like_a we_o find_v in_o chrysostome_n in_o many_o place_n speak_v as_o clear_o as_o when_o the_o sun_n shine_v at_o noon_n day_n monach_n the_o bread_n before_o it_o be_v sanctify_v be_v call_v by_o we_o bread_n but_o after_o that_o it_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n it_o be_v think_v worthy_a to_o be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n notwithstanding_o that_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n do_v still_o abide_v in_o it_o and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o say_v johannem_fw-la if_o it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o convert_v sanctify_a vessel_n to_o private_a use_n there_o not_o be_v in_o they_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o body_n etc._n etc._n these_o thing_n have_v so_o clear_a evidence_n of_o truth_n teach_v in_o those_o time_n that_o bellarmine_n have_v no_o way_n to_o answer_v but_o to_o invent_v this_o shift_n that_o 22_o a_o certain_a disciple_n of_o berengarius_fw-la do_v insert_v and_o interlace_v it_o but_o who_o it_o be_v or_o when_o it_o be_v or_o how_o it_o be_v disclose_v and_o detect_v he_o can_v tell_v and_o therefore_o it_o may_v just_o be_v deny_v see_v ofhim_n it_o can_v be_v confirm_v beside_o this_o be_v a_o easy_a way_n to_o answer_v all_o allegation_n and_o authority_n to_o say_v they_o be_v corrupt_v by_o heretic_n if_o such_o counterfeit_a coin_n may_v go_v for_o good_a payment_n thus_o far_o of_o this_o matter_n now_o if_o so_o great_a variety_n and_o dissension_n be_v among_o they_o in_o this_o one_o controversy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o supper_n to_o which_o we_o may_v add_v infinite_a more_o what_o a_o huge_a heap_n of_o difference_n shall_v we_o find_v among_o they_o if_o we_o shall_v run_v over_o all_o the_o controversy_n lie_v between_o us._n let_v they_o therefore_o never_o object_v against_o we_o our_o division_n or_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o mote_n they_o espy_v in_o we_o let_v they_o rather_o reconcile_v themselves_o one_o to_o another_o and_o pull_v out_o the_o beam_n out_o of_o their_o own_o eye_n or_o else_o for_o shame_n hold_v their_o peace_n doubtless_o among_o we_o they_o shall_v never_o find_v great_a doubt_n and_o difference_n then_o have_v be_v among_o the_o child_n and_o church_n of_o god_n now_o for_o our_o further_a direction_n touch_v this_o point_n ofdissentionsin_v the_o church_n late_o &_o large_o debate_v by_o this_o enemy_n as_o the_o chief_a object_n and_o subject_n of_o his_o warn-word_n and_o observation_n dilate_a through_o many_o chap._n as_o welbecame_v a_o man_n of_o his_o leisure_n and_o learning_n i_o will_v insist_v a_o while_n upon_o this_o point_n wherein_o observe_v with_o i_o these_o 4._o thing_n first_o that_o unity_n be_v oftentimes_o out_o of_o the_o church_n second_o that_o dissension_n be_v sometime_o in_o the_o church_n three_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v and_o be_v at_o this_o present_a full_a of_o contention_n last_o that_o this_o discourse_n of_o division_n in_o our_o church_n may_v be_v take_v up_o of_o the_o turk_n and_o use_v against_o christ_n
and_o christian_n religion_n so_o that_o while_o they_o seek_v to_o give_v we_o a_o blow_n they_o reach_v a_o sword_n into_o the_o enemy_n hand_n to_o cut_v the_o heartstring_n of_o their_o own_o cause_n church_n touch_v the_o first_o thing_n all_o agreement_n among_o man_n be_v no_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o matter_n wherein_o they_o agree_v inasmuch_o as_o all_o malefactor_n and_o enemy_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v a_o kind_n of_o agreement_n there_o be_v agreement_n in_o idolatry_n in_o adultery_n in_o robbery_n in_o conspiracy_n in_o murder_n in_o mutiny_n and_o in_o all_o manner_n of_o impiety_n which_o be_v all_o odious_a to_o god_n and_o hateful_a to_o man_n when_o all_o the_o earth_n be_v of_o one_o tongue_n and_o language_n 6_o they_o all_o conspire_v in_o build_v the_o tower_n of_o babel_n they_o that_o worship_v the_o golden_a calf_n say_v 3_o all_o with_o one_o consent_n these_o be_v thy_o god_n o_o israel_n that_o bring_v thou_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n so_o the_o apostle_n out_o of_o psal._n 2._o declare_v 26_o that_o the_o jew_n and_o roman_n the_o state_n civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a confederate_v together_o do_v all_o consent_n and_o conspire_v against_o god_n and_o against_o his_o anoint_a there_o be_v a_o agreement_n xi_o between_o corah_n dathan_n and_o abiram_n with_o their_o rebellious_a company_n and_o consort_n join_v and_o combine_v together_o against_o moses_n and_o aaron_n the_o ten_o tribe_n agree_v in_o worship_v the_o golden_a calf_n in_o dan_n and_o bethell_n the_o priest_n of_o baal_n consent_v 13_o together_o against_o michaiah_n the_o true_a prophet_n ofgod_o all_o the_o people_n with_o 22_o one_o mind_n and_o with_o one_o mouth_n cry_v against_o christ_n let_v he_o be_v crucify_v and_o john_n 〈◊〉_d that_o great_a 16_o and_o small_a rich_a and_o poor_a bond_n and_o free_a shall_v agree_v in_o follow_v and_o worship_v antichrist_n the_o enemy_n of_o christ._n second_o as_o unity_n be_v oftentimes_o out_o of_o the_o church_n so_o sometime_o q_o dissension_n be_v in_o the_o church_n the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o always_o in_o outward_a thing_n nor_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n one_o mind_n and_o meaning_n abraham_n and_o lot_n love_v god_n and_o belove_a of_o god_n 7_o dissent_v in_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n josephes_n brother_n hate_v he_o without_o a_o cause_n and_o persecute_v he_o almost_o unto_o the_o death_n the_o priest_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o people_n do_v dissent_v from_o the_o prophet_n of_o god_n moreover_o in_o the_o household_n and_o family_n of_o christ_n 24_o ambition_n envy_n and_o dissension_n reign_v and_o remain_v as_o luk._n xxii_o there_o arise_v a_o strife_n among_o they_o which_o shall_v he_o the_o great_a and_o math._n 20_o 24._o when_o the_o other_o ten_o 24_o hear_v of_o the_o ambitious_a desire_n of_o these_o son_n of_o zebede_n they_o disdain_v at_o the_o two_o brethren_n so_o paul_n withstand_v peter_n to_o his_o face_n xi_o because_o he_o be_v to_o be_v reprove_v as_o miriam_n and_o aaron_n do_v to_o moses_n who_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reprove_v likewise_o luke_n act_n xv_o speak_v of_o paul_n and_o 〈◊〉_d say_v 39_o they_o be_v so_o stir_v that_o they_o depart_v asunder_o one_o from_o another_o which_o albeit_o it_o fall_v out_o to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o gain_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n who_o be_v able_a to_o bring_v good_a out_o of_o evil_a as_o he_o do_v light_a out_o of_o darkness_n yet_o it_o show_v their_o weakness_n and_o want_n especial_o of_o barnabas_n see_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n assign_v the_o reason_n whereon_o paul_n ground_v himself_o touch_n his_o determination_n but_o deliver_v not_o the_o reason_n of_o barnabas_n his_o resolution_n beside_o we_o see_v act_n xi_o they_o of_o the_o circumcision_n contend_v against_o 2_o peter_n because_o he_o do_v eat_v with_o the_o uncircumcised_a as_o touch_v the_o corinthian_n who_o be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o sanctify_v in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o apostle_n say_v 11_o it_o have_v be_v declare_v to_o i_o of_o you_o by_o they_o that_o be_v of_o the_o house_n of_o cloe_n that_o there_o be_v contention_n among_o you_o and_o chap_n xi_o in_o this_o that_o i_o declare_v i_o praise_v you_o not_o that_o you_o come_v together_o not_o with_o profit_n but_o with_o hurt_n for_o i_o hear_v that_o there_o be_v dissension_n among_o you_o and_o i_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v true_a in_o some_o part_n for_o there_o must_v be_v even_a heresy_n among_o you_o that_o they_o which_o be_v approve_v among_o you_o may_v be_v know_v three_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o far_o from_o the_o unity_n and_o agreement_n which_o they_o boast_n of_o that_o contrariwise_o it_o have_v be_v &_o be_v full_a of_o contention_n and_o bitter_a controversy_n if_o we_o will_v search_v the_o history_n of_o former_a time_n we_o shall_v find_v the_o contention_n and_o quarrel_n between_o they_o to_o have_v be_v infinite_a and_o innumerable_a pope_n have_v be_v against_o pope_n nay_o antipope_v against_o antipope_n when_o there_o be_v two_o pope_n nay_o three_o pope_n among_o they_o at_o once_o which_o condemn_v curse_a and_o banned_a each_o other_o to_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n onuphrius_n a_o popish_a chronicler_n pontif_n reckon_v up_o thirty_o schism_n among_o they_o and_o those_o not_o of_o short_a dutance_n but_o of_o long_a continuance_n so_o many_o as_o no_o church_n can_v boast_n of_o beside_o their_o variety_n be_v such_o about_o formosus_fw-la that_o for_o some_o year_n every_o pope_n cancel_v and_o 〈◊〉_d his_o predecessor_n act_n what_o one_o institute_v the_o other_o repeal_v they_o condemn_v one_o another_o and_o follow_v their_o private_a faction_n and_o affection_n with_o such_o intestine_a malice_n &_o barbarous_a cruelty_n that_o platina_n formosus_fw-la be_v take_v up_o after_o his_o death_n be_v take_v up_o be_v burn_v be_v burn_v his_o ash_n be_v cast_v into_o the_o river_n for_o pope_n stephen_n the_o six_o take_v up_o his_o carcase_n 6_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n bring_v it_o into_o judgement_n spoil_v it_o 〈◊〉_d his_o robe_n cut_v off_o 3._o finger_n of_o it_o and_o cast_v it_o into_o the_o stream_n tiber_fw-la thus_o be_v the_o pretend_a successor_n of_o peter_n 〈◊〉_d about_o with_o giddiness_n es_fw-la krantzius_n speak_v of_o they_o 22_o and_o the_o head_n of_o the_o romish_a and_o popish_a church_n be_v long_o without_o brain_n though_o not_o without_o brawl_a this_o schism_n of_o two_o or_o three_o pope_n at_n onetime_n shall_v witness_v 〈◊〉_d all_o posterity_n in_o all_o age_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o perpetual_a infamy_n of_o their_o deadly_a discord_n how_o far_o their_o church_n be_v from_o that_o perfect_a unity_n they_o brag_v and_o boast_v of_o what_o shall_v i_o speak_v of_o their_o infinite_a 〈◊〉_d and_o difference_n in_o cleave_v to_o this_o saint_n and_o that_o saint_n which_o they_o have_v multiply_v 28_o according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o their_o city_n likewise_o of_o their_o diverse_a missale_n 〈◊〉_d and_o ceremony_n use_v among_o they_o of_o their_o sundry_a 〈◊〉_d of_o monk_n and_o nun_n which_o they_o have_v so_o increase_v of_o late_a whereas_o not_o many_o hundred_o year_n ago_o they_o mangle_v and_o mingle_v they_o with_o the_o leaven_n of_o their_o own_o invention_n now_o as_o there_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o common_a and_o continual_a use_n among_o all_o christian_n more_o comfortable_a than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o no_o point_n of_o religion_n be_v at_o this_o day_n more_o corrupt_v and_o deprave_a with_o the_o guess_n gloze_n error_n heresy_n wrest_n wrangling_n and_o idolatry_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o the_o same_o i_o have_v therefore_o unfold_v and_o unmask_v their_o false_a doctrine_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n in_o general_a in_o the_o first_o book_n which_o show_v whence_o the_o word_n be_v borrow_v what_o thing_n be_v common_a to_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n as_o also_o what_o they_o have_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a what_o a_o sacrament_n be_v by_o who_o the_o sacrament_n ought_v to_o be_v administer_v that_o they_o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n and_o command_v to_o be_v use_v and_o frequent_v of_o all_o person_n in_o the_o church_n what_o be_v the_o sign_n and_o sacramental_a rite_n what_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d part_n and_o spiritual_a signification_n of_o they_o together_o with_o the_o fit_a and_o full_a analogy_n and_o agreement_n that_o be_v between_o they_o i_o have_v also_o entreat_v of_o their_o force_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o end_n and_o use_n of_o they_o of_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o of_o the_o new_a of_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n &_o namely_o of_o the_o 5_o
misrable_a people_n lead_v by_o such_o blind_a guide_v o_o miserable_a guide_n of_o such_o blind_a people_n what_o a_o woeful_a condition_n be_v this_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v live_v all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n in_o the_o bosom_n of_o their_o holy_a mother_n the_o church_n &_o yet_o her_o son_n and_o daughter_n can_v never_o assure_v themselves_o to_o have_v be_v baptize_v though_o they_o make_v the_o want_n thereof_o 5_o a_o mark_n of_o reprobation_n or_o ever_o to_o have_v receive_v the_o lord_n supper_n or_o ever_o to_o have_v be_v 〈◊〉_d or_o absolve_v see_v all_o hang_v upon_o the_o priest_n intention_n observation_n ordination_n this_o be_v the_o lamen_n table_n condition_n of_o all_o those_o that_o live_v under_o the_o heavy_a yoke_n and_o grievous_a bondage_n of_o superstition_n there_o be_v no_o peace_n no_o comfort_n no_o joy_n of_o hart_n in_o such_o a_o doubtful_a and_o doleful_a religion_n wherefore_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v 4_o go_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n that_o you_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o that_o you_o receive_v not_o of_o her_o plague_n now_o among_o all_o other_o abuse_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o profanation_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n none_o be_v more_o notable_a and_o notorious_a than_o that_o great_a idol_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v indeed_o a_o mass_n of_o many_o abomination_n and_o howsoever_o it_o be_v great_o like_v of_o those_o that_o be_v enamour_v of_o it_o as_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o bucol_n fair_a yet_o seem_v fair_a to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o love_n it_o be_v know_v to_o the_o true_a church_n to_o be_v a_o heap_n of_o error_n a_o lump_n of_o confusion_n a_o bottomless_a gulf_n of_o all_o blasphemy_n and_o a_o engine_n 3_o that_o overturn_v the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n they_o make_v the_o lord_n supper_n to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n not_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o thansgiving_n but_o propitiatory_a to_o be_v offer_v by_o a_o masse-priest_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a to_o save_v man_n and_o not_o only_o to_o save_v man_n but_o sometime_o their_o pig_n and_o their_o swine_n from_o disease_n for_o they_o have_v a_o mass_n common_o call_v the_o mass_n of_o saint_n antony_n yea_o if_o a_o poor_a woman_n hen_n be_v sick_a and_o ready_a to_o be_v lose_v she_o may_v procure_v a_o mass_n to_o be_v say_v for_o it_o and_o hereby_o although_o no_o good_a redound_v to_o anthony_n the_o party_n yet_o some_o gain_n shall_v return_v to_o the_o priest_n who_o 32_o if_o he_o see_v no_o money_n will_v say_v no_o mass_n and_o be_v not_o these_o more_o beastly_a and_o unclean_a than_o swine_n yea_o more_o mad_a than_o mad_a man_n thus_o to_o abuse_v the_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o turn_v that_o to_o their_o own_o profit_n which_o be_v institute_v for_o the_o people_n comfort_n do_v they_o not_o by_o this_o mean_n make_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n of_o none_o effect_n biel_n while_o they_o offer_v up_o a_o new_a that_o only_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v once_o offer_v have_v sanctify_v we_o for_o ever_o and_o yet_o behold_v more_o abomination_n than_o these_o the_o right_a end_n of_o the_o institution_n be_v base_o esteem_v they_o make_v it_o of_o speclall_a force_n against_o tempest_n against_o sickness_n against_o war_n available_a to_o save_v cattle_n to_o cure_v the_o fever_n to_o restore_v lose_v thing_n yea_o profitable_a for_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o 27_o ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la sine_fw-la bono_fw-mi motu_fw-la utentis_fw-la that_o be_v only_o be_v present_a at_o the_o work_n do_v though_o there_o be_v never_o a_o good_a motion_n bring_v thereunto_o by_o he_o that_o be_v present_a thus_o they_o make_v the_o mass_n devise_v by_o antichrist_n more_o precious_a than_o the_o holy_a supper_n institute_v by_o christ._n touch_v the_o word_n mass_n we_o must_v understand_v that_o neither_o the_o name_n nor_o thing_n mean_v by_o the_o name_n by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o in_o any_o 〈◊〉_d and_o approve_a writer_n for_o four_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n to_o call_v the_o sacrament_n or_o sacrifice_n by_o that_o name_n tertullian_n cyprian_n jerome_n augustine_n lactantius_n know_v it_o not_o these_o lataine_a father_n use_v it_o not_o again_o the_o father_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n chrysostom_n basill_n nazianzen_n gregory_n nissene_n and_o other_o be_v never_o acquaint_v with_o it_o they_o pass_v by_o it_o as_o a_o stranger_n unto_o they_o but_o as_o there_o go_v many_o forge_a and_o 〈◊〉_d write_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n so_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o the_o word_n mass_n may_v be_v find_v in_o such_o base_a and_o bastard_n book_n as_o in_o augustine_n 〈◊〉_d sermon_n de_fw-fr tempore_fw-la &_o jerom_n on_o 11_o the_o proverb_n which_o book_n be_v never_o make_v by_o they_o but_o be_v of_o another_o style_n and_o of_o a_o late_a stamp_n and_o howsoever_o some_o will_v derive_v it_o from_o the_o 10_o haebrew_n word_n missath_n which_o signify_v a_o oblation_n yet_o it_o seem_v rather_o to_o be_v all_o one_o fecit_fw-la with_o missio_fw-la which_o import_v a_o send_v away_o and_o a_o licens_v to_o depart_v and_o therefore_o saint_n cyprian_n say_v remissa_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la in_o stead_n of_o remssio_fw-la for_o this_o be_v the_o order_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o former_a time_n novice_n and_o such_o as_o be_v ni_fw-fr new_o plant_v in_o the_o church_n be_v convert_v srom_o paganism_n to_o christianity_n and_o from_o infidelity_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o yet_o baptize_v till_o they_o be_v able_a 15_o to_o give_v a_o answer_n to_o such_o as_o ask_v of_o they_o a_o reason_n of_o their_o profession_n be_v not_o suffer_v to_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n table_n likewise_o such_o as_o cpistol_n deny_v the_o faith_n by_o sink_v and_o shrink_v under_o the_o heat_n of_o persecution_n or_o commit_v some_o other_o heinous_a offence_n be_v enjoin_v to_o make_v satisfaction_n to_o the_o church_n who_o they_o have_v grievous_o offend_v no_o withstand_v they_o may_v be_v present_a at_o the_o public_a prayer_n the_o church_n and_o at_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n yet_o may_v not_o be_v present_a at_o the_o administration_n of_o baptism_n nor_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n wherefore_o after_o the_o prayer_n be_v finish_v and_o the_o sermon_n end_v the_o deaconsay_v to_o such_o as_o be_v bar_v either_o by_o age_n or_o want_v of_o sufficient_a knowledge_n or_o their_o own_o offence_n from_o the_o sacrament_n item_fw-la missa_fw-la est_fw-la that_o be_v go_v you_o hence_o you_o may_v depart_v moreover_o such_o as_o will_v not_o communicate_v with_o their_o brother_n be_v will_v to_o depart_v &_o not_o 23_o to_o trouble_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n that_o stay_v to_o communicate_v of_o this_o dismiss_v and_o send_v away_o all_o novice_n 〈◊〉_d and_o careless_a person_n which_o either_o may_v not_o or_o 〈◊〉_d not_o communicate_v and_o of_o this_o proclamation_n of_o the_o deacon_n the_o whole_a action_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n in_o process_n of_o time_n be_v call_v the_o mass_n that_o be_v a_o dismiss_v of_o all_o such_o person_n as_o be_v not_o to_o communicate_v but_o when_o through_o negligence_n of_o the_o people_n or_o covetousness_n of_o the_o priest_n this_o order_n be_v alter_v yet_o the_o name_n be_v retain_v and_o now_o it_o be_v use_v for_o another_o thing_n to_o wit_n for_o that_o solemn_a action_n be_v whereby_o the_o sacrament_n be_v make_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o offer_v up_o to_o god_n to_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o have_v just_o abolish_v both_o the_o name_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o mass_n inasmuch_o as_o it_o have_v frustrate_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o take_v from_o we_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o albeit_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o the_o lord_n supper_n may_v true_o be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n sacrifice_n be_v a_o memorial_n of_o the_o real_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n offer_v upon_o the_o cross_n be_v a_o thaks-giving_a to_o god_n for_o the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n be_v a_o present_v and_o give_v up_o ourselves_o our_o soul_n and_o body_n to_o god_n a_o live_n holy_a and_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n and_o be_v join_v with_o alm_n and_o relief_n to_o the_o poor_a according_a to_o every_o man_n ability_n which_o be_v a_o testimony_n of_o our_o thankfulness_n to_o god_n yet_o as_o they_o understand_v it_o to_o be_v a_o real_a external_a bodily_a and_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o native_a and_o proper_a signification_n and_o themselves_o to_o be_v true_o and_o prope_o priest_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n to_o offer_v
the_o prayer_n a_o it_o signify_v so_o be_v it_o deut_n 27_o xv_o xvi_o q_o what_o use_n be_v there_o of_o it_o a_o it_o show_v both_o our_o fervent_a desire_n to_o obtain_v and_o a_o assurance_n to_o our_o heart_n that_o we_o shall_v obtain_v that_o which_o we_o ask_v 2._o cor._n 1._o 20._o q_o what_o be_v a_o sacrament_n a_o it_o be_v a_o visible_a sign_n and_o seal_n that_o christ_n and_o all_o his_o benefit_n be_v give_v unto_o us._n rome_n 4_o xi_o q_o what_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v in_o a_o sacrament_n a_o two_o thing_n his_o part_n and_o his_o use_n math._n 3_o xi_o q_o what_o be_v the_o part_n of_o a_o sacrament_n a_o two_o the_o outward_a part_n and_o the_o inward_a rom._n 4._o xi_o twelve_o gen_n 17_o xi_o 1_o cor_fw-la x_o 1_o 2_o 3_o q_o how_o many_o be_v the_o outward_a part_n a_o four_o the_o minister_n the_o word_n the_o sign_n and_o the_o receiver_n math._n 26_o 26_o 27._o q_o how_o many_o be_v the_o inward_a part_n a_o four_o god_n the_o father_n the_o spirit_n christ_n and_o the_o faithful_a math._n 3s15_n 16_o q_o what_o proportion_n be_v there_o between_o these_o part_n a_o even_o as_o the_o minister_n by_o the_o word_n offer_v and_o apply_v visible_o the_o element_n unto_o the_o body_n of_o the_o receiver_n so_o the_o father_n by_o the_o spirit_n offer_v and_o apply_v jesus_n christ_n invisible_o unto_o the_o faithful_a receiver_n act._n 1_o 36._o 37_o q_o what_o be_v the_o use_n of_o a_o sacrament_n a_o three_o first_o to_o nourish_v faith_n rom._n 49._o x_o xi_o second_o to_o be_v a_o seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n between_o god_n and_o we_o gen_n 17_o three_o to_o be_v a_o badge_n of_o our_o christian_n profession_n eph_n two_o xi_o twelve_o xiii_o a_o how_o many_o sacrament_n be_v there_o a_o two_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n 1_o cor_fw-la twelve_o xiii_o and_o chap_n x_o 1_o 2_o 3._o 4_o q_o what_o be_v baptism_n a_o baptism_n be_v the_o first_o sacrament_n wherein_o by_o the_o outward_a wash_v of_o the_o body_n with_o water_n once_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n andof_o the_o holy-ghost_n the_o inward_a cleanse_n of_o the_o soul_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v represent_v math_n 28_o 29_o q_o what_o be_v to_o be_v cosider_v in_o baptism_n a_o two_o thing_n his_o part_n and_o his_o use_n q_o what_o be_v the_o part_n of_o baptism_n a_o outward_a and_o inward_a part_n act_n 2_o 38_o q_o how_o many_o be_v the_o outward_a part_n of_o baptism_n a_o four_o the_o minister_n the_o word_n of_o institution_n the_o element_n of_o water_n and_o the_o body_n wash_v math._n 28_o 19_o q_o how_o many_o be_v the_o inward_a part_n a_o four_o god_n the_o father_n the_o holy_a spirit_n christ_n and_o the_o soul_n cleanse_v math_n 3._o 15_o 16_o mar_n 16_o 16_o q_o what_o be_v the_o proportion_n between_o these_o part_n a_o even_o as_o the_o minister_n by_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n apply_v the_o water_n to_o the_o wash_n of_o the_o body_n so_o the_o 〈◊〉_d through_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n apply_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o cleanse_n of_o the_o soul_n luk_n 3_o 16_o joh_n 1_o 33_o q_o what_o be_v the_o use_n of_o baptism_n a_o three_o first_o to_o seal_v up_o the_o remission_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n act_n xxii_o 16_o second_o to_o show_v our_o set_n and_o engraft_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n gal._n 3_o 27_o three_o to_o teach_v we_o to_o die_v to_o sin_n and_o rise_v again_o to_o right_a ousnes_n rom._n 6._o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o q_o what_o be_v the_o lord_n supper_n a_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v the_o second_o sacrament_n wherein_o by_o visible_a receive_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v represent_v our_o spiritual_a communion_n with_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 16_o 17_o q_o what_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v be_v consider_v in_o the_o lord_n supper_n a_o two_o thing_n his_o part_n and_o his_o use_n math_n 26._o xxvi_o xxvii_o xxviii_o q_o what_o be_v the_o part_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n a_o two_o outward_a and_o inward_a 1_o cor_n x_o xvi_o q_o how_o many_o be_v the_o outward_a part_n a_o four_o the_o minister_n the_o word_n of_o institution_n bread_n and_o wine_n and_o the_o communicant_a luk_n xxii_o 19_o xx_o q_o how_o many_o be_v the_o inward_a part_n a_o four_o the_o father_n the_o spirit_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o saithfull_a i_o cor_o twelve_o xiii_o joh._n 6_o xxvii_o q_o what_o be_v the_o proportion_n between_o these_o part_n a_o even_o as_o the_o minister_n by_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n offer_v bread_n and_o wine_n unto_o the_o communicant_n to_o feed_v thereupou_fw-mi bodily_a and_o corporal_o so_o the_o father_n by_o the_o spirit_n offer_v &_o give_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n unto_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o feed_v upon_o they_o spiritual_o i_o cor_o xi_o xxiii_o xxiiii_o twenty-five_o xxvi_o etc._n etc._n q_o what_o be_v the_o use_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n a_o three_o first_o to_o show_v forth_o the_o death_n and_o suffering_n of_o christ_n with_o all_o thanks_o give_v i_o cor_o xi_o xxvi_o luk._n xxii_o nineteeen_o second_o to_o teach_v we_o our_o communion_n and_o grow_v in_o christ_n 1_o cor_n x_o 16_o three_o to_o declare_v our_o communion_n and_o agreement_n with_o our_o brother_n 1_o cor_fw-la x._o 17_o etc._n etc._n ch_n twelve_o 13._o q_o how_o may_v we_o come_v aright_o to_o the_o lord_n table_n a_o by_o prepare_v and_o examine_v ourselves_o i_o cor_o xi_o 28_o q_o what_o be_v the_o right_a manner_n of_o prepare_v ourselves_o a_o first_o we_o must_v have_v a_o knowledge_n of_o god_n of_o man_n fall_n and_o his_o restore_n again_o into_o the_o covenant_n by_o christ._n joh_n xvii_o three_o second_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n two_o cor_fw-la xiii_o 5._o three_o repentance_n from_o all_o dead_a work_n daily_o renew_a for_o our_o daily_a sin_n psal._n xxvi_o 6._o last_o reconciliation_n to_o our_o brethren_n yea_o even_o our_o enemy_n math_n 5_o 23_o xxiiii_o now_o to_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v you_o that_o you_o fall_v not_o and_o to_o present_v you_o faultless_a before_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o glory_n with_o you_o to_o god_n only_o wise_a our_o saviour_n be_v glory_n and_o majesty_n and_o dominion_n and_o power_n both_o now_o and_o for_o ever_o amen_n jude_n verse_n 24_o 25_o gentle_a reader_n i_o be_o to_o desire_v thou_o to_o amend_v these_o escape_n with_o thy_o pen_n either_o alter_v the_o sense_n or_o hinder_v the_o understanding_n the_o rest_n i_o remit_v to_o thy_o favourable_a construction_n and_o correction_n page_n 6._o line_n 13._o read_v be_v here_o full_a p._n 18._o l_o 17._o and_o not_o make_v p._n 19_o l._n xxi_o unfit_o p_o 37._o l_o 3._o that_o they_o be_v no._n p._n 83._o l._n 36._o a_o connterfect_a word_n be_v fit_a enough_o for_o a_o counterfect_a sacrament_n p_o 88_o l_o 7._o and_o not_o accept_v p._n 〈◊〉_d l_o 33_o deal_n which_o be_v good_a p_o 136._o l_o xv_o and_o evil_a worker_n speed_v p_o 148_o l_o 6_o by_o the_o practice_n and_o xiijj_fw-la but_o reach_n eth_z not_o p_o 155_o l_o 32_o to_o baptism_n p_o 163_o lin_v 〈◊〉_d they_o be_v admit_v p_o 165._o l._n 1_o access_n p_o 170_o l_o xxi_o be_v not_o able_a p_o 179._o l_o 22_o a_o assurance_n p_o 201_o l_o 1_o escape_v unpunished_a and_o xxii_o as_o a_o and_o 13_o thus_o much_o p_o 209l_o 4_o name_v the_o p_o 238_o l_o 29_o and_o 31_o change_n p_o 240_o l_o 29_o yet_o be_v he_o 250_o l._n three_o inhuman_a p_o 253_o l_o 4._o all_o the._n p._n 228_o l_o 24_o in_o the_o cup._n p_o 285_o l._n 22._o out_o of_o the_o holy_a use_n p_o 290_o l._n 4._o consecration_n consecration_n 2_o thes_n 2_o 2_o luke_n x_o 1_o 1_o ephe_n 4_o `8_n `8_n ro._n 1_o 16_o 16_o 〈◊〉_d 18_o 18_o titus_n 1_o 1_o 1_o mat_n 13_o 25_o 25_o 〈◊〉_d pet_n 5_o 2_o 2_o plutar._n in_o vita_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1_o cor_fw-la 3_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ezeck_n 33_o 33_o 〈◊〉_d 4_o 17_o gen_n 28_o 28_o psa._n 138_o iwenal_n li._n 3._o saty._n 2_o 2_o 1_o same_o 2_o senecade_n reme_v for_o 〈◊〉_d senec._n de_fw-fr benef._n lib_n 3_o cap_n 1_o cicero_n de_fw-fr offic_n lib._n 3_o persi_fw-la sati_fw-la 1_o 1_o tim_fw-la 4_o 8_o act._n xx_o 32_o 32_o the_o number_n of_o they_o they_o use_v be_v three_o three_o preparation_n to_o the_o work_n consist_v in_o examination_n of_o ourselves_o chap._n 15_o where_o in_o weigh_v two_o thing_n thing_n god_n always_o give_v his_o sacrament_n to_o his_o church_n church_n gen._n 2_o 9_o 9_o gen._n 6_o 14._o 14._o gen._n 17._o 11._o 11._o rom._n 4_o 11_o 11_o the_o agreement_n between_o the_o word_n &_o
fol._n 452_o nu_fw-la 23_o 23_o barthol_n caranza_n sum_n council_n florent_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 458_o 458_o polid_a virg._n the_o inventor_n rerum_fw-la lib._n 5_o cap_n 9_o 9_o math_n 26._o 29_o 29_o papist_n be_v near_o of_o kin_n to_o the_o old_a heretic_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d matt._n 21_o 23_o 23_o 1_o cor_fw-la xi_o 23_o 23_o math._n 17._o 5_o 5_o cyprian_n epist_n 74_o 74_o the_o 4_o outward_a part_n be_v the_o communicant_n communicant_n math._n 26_o 26_o 26_o con_fw-mi try_v 〈◊〉_d 3_o can_v 5_o 5_o reu._n 13_o 8_o 8_o exod._n 12_o x_o x_o exod._n 16_o 19_o 19_o math._n 28_o 29_o 29_o hosij_fw-la confess_v the_o eutharift_n cap._n 39_o 39_o math._n 26_o 26_o 27_o 1_o cor_fw-la xi_o 26_o 26_o council_n try_v sess_v 13._o cap._n 5_o 5_o origem_fw-la in_o levit_n homil_n 5_o use_v 2_o 2_o guil._n alan_o de_fw-fr sacrific_a euchar_n cap_n 41_o bristo_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 26_o 26_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o to_o be_v adore_v adore_v math._n 4_o 10_o 10_o 1_o king_n 8_o 27_o acts._n 7_o 48_o 49_o 49_o joh_n 4_o 22_o 22_o john_n 4_o 24_o 24_o heb_n xi_o 6_o 6_o jud_v 6_o 31_o 32_o use_v 3_o 3_o conc._n triden_v sess_v 22_o c_o 1_o 1_o in_o what_o sense_n christ_n supper_n may_v be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n sacrifice_n the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n live_v among_o the_o gentile_n call_v the_o supper_n a_o sacrifice_n sacrifice_n see_v more_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o book_n book_n the_o original_n of_o the_o word_n mass_n mass_n polid_a virgil_n de_fw-mi invent_v rerum_fw-la lib._n 5._o cap_n 10_o 10_o sueton_fw-la in_o cal_v cap._n 25_o 25_o holcot_n in_o 4_o lib._n send_v 〈◊〉_d 3_o 3_o 1_o cor_fw-la x_o 16_o heb._n x_o x_o 12_o hebru_n 9_o 12_o 12_o heb._n x_o 18_o 18_o rom._n 6_o 10_o 10_o hebr._n 5_o 4_o 5_o 5_o joh._n 15._o 1_o 2_o 2_o math_n 15_o 13_o 13_o heb._n 9_o 22_o 22_o roma_fw-it 4_o 25_o 25_o john_n 19_o 30_o 30_o 1_o 〈◊〉_d 2_o 9_o 9_o hebr_n 6._o 20._o psal._n 110_o 4_o 4_o the_o mass_n be_v no_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a dead_a eccle._n 9_o 10_o 10_o john_n 9_o 4_o &_o 11_o 9_o 10_o use_v 4_o against_o private_a mast_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n conc._n trid._n ses_fw-fr 22._o cap._n 6_o 6_o math._n 26_o 26_o 26_o arist._n li._n 1._o de_fw-fr coel_n cap._n 1_o 1_o luke_n 22_o 19_o 19_o 1_o cor_fw-la xi_o 23_o 23_o 1_o cor_fw-la xi_o 20_o xxi_o xxi_o 1_o cor_fw-la 11_o 28_o use_v 5_o 5_o it_o be_v no_o precept_n of_o christ_n to_o receive_v the_o lord_n supper_n fast_v fast_v august_n epist_n 118._o 118._o 1_o cor._n xi_o 36_o 36_o rom._n 14._o 17_o 17_o rom._n 14_o 3_o 5_o 19_o 19_o book_n 1._o ca._n 8_o 8_o consecration_n what_o what_o the_o use_n of_o the_o element_n be_v change_v the_o substance_n be_v not_o change_v change_v num._n 20_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d matt._n 23_o 16_o 16_o act._n 17_o 28_o 28_o two_o mean_n of_o consecration_n to_o wit_v the_o word_n and_o prayer_n prayer_n 1_o tim_n 4_o 4_o 5_o 5_o just_o in_o in_o apol._n 2_o 2_o gene._n 1_o 31_o 31_o genes_n 2_o 17_o 17_o go_v 7_o 2_o 2_o levit._n 11._o 3_o 3_o rom._n 14_o 15_o 15_o levit._n xi_o 7_o 7_o jerem._n 20_o 7_o use_v 1_o 1_o gal._n 3._o 1_o 1_o we_o offer_v up_o as_o much_o as_o christ_n coman_n ded_fw-we we_o we_o 2_o sam_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 2_o king_n 1839_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d gal._n 3_o 2_o 〈◊〉_d use_v use_v hosich_n in_o levit_n lib._n 2_o c._n 8_o 8_o euagri_n lib._n 4_o cap._n 8_o niceph._n lib._n 17_o cap_n 25_o 25_o hieron_fw-gr come_v in_o 1_o cor._n xi_o xi_o numb_a 20_o 〈◊〉_d 1_o cor_fw-la x._o 4_o 4_o matth._n 3._o 6_o 6_o john_n 3_o 23_o use_v 3_o 3_o 1_o cori_fw-la x_o 16_o 16_o how_o the_o sign_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v bless_v use_v 4_o 4_o we_o ought_v often_o to_o receive_v the_o lord_n supper_n supper_n 1_o cor_fw-la xi_o 25_o 25_o reason_n rédred_n to_o move_v we_o to_o frequét_v the_o lo._n table_n table_n exo._n 20_o 13_o 13_o gene._n 14_o 12_o 12_o mal._n 1_o 6_o 6_o num._n 21._o 9_o 9_o math_n 26._o 26_o 28._o 28._o num_fw-la 23._o 19_o 19_o gai._n 4_o 4_o 4_o heb_n 4._o 15_o 15_o math_n 1_o 21_o 21_o what_o be_v the_o inward_a part_n of_o the_o lo._n supper_n supper_n august_a cont_n maximin_fw-fr li._n 3._o 3._o the_o agreement_n between_o the_o outward_a and_o inward_a part_n part_n john_n 6_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d galath_n 1_o 4_o 4_o hebru_n 5_o 5_o 5_o luke_n 4_o 18_o 18_o john_n 4_o 10_o use_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rome_n 5_o 5_o 5_o rom._n 〈◊〉_d 16_o 16_o eph._n 4_o 30_o 30_o deut_n 8_o 3_o math_n 14_o 4_o 4_o ezek_n 4_o 13_o lenit_fw-la 26_o 26_o use_v 3_o 3_o math._n 17._o 5_o &_o 3._o xvii_o xvii_o eph_n 3._o xvi_o i_o nineteeen_o nineteeen_o rom._n 32._o 32._o psal._n 85_o 10_o 10_o 1_o john_n 4._o xi_o use_v 4._o objection_n objection_n exod._n twelve_o 46_o answer_v answer_v isaiah_n 53._o 4._o 5_o 5_o math._n 27_o 46_o 46_o the_o second_o inward_a part_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n spirit_n roma_fw-it 8_o 15_o galat._n 3_o 2_o 5_o use_v 1._o 1._o jam._n 1_o 21_o use_v 2_o 2_o john_n 8_o 56_o 56_o aug_fw-mi tract_n in_o john_n 26._o &_o 27_o objection_n answer_n answer_n 1_o joh._n 17_o 20_o deut._n 4_o 193_o 193_o 1_o john_n r_o 3_o 3_o math._n 28_o 20_o 20_o the_o three_o inward_a part_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d joh._n 6_o 48._o 50_o 50_o how_o the_o sacramental_a rite_n do_v serve_v to_o strengthen_v our_o faith_n use_v 1_o 1_o against_o the_o real_a presence_n presence_n the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n set_v down_o down_o confess_v gal_n lic_a art_n 37._o confel_v anglic_n art_n 12_o cal_n instit_n lib_n 4._o cap._n 17_o 17_o col._n 3_o 1_o 2_o 3_o 3_o conc_fw-fr trid._n 〈◊〉_d 13_o cap._n 1_o 1_o de_fw-fr con_fw-mi do_v 2_o ego_fw-la bereng_n bereng_n aug_fw-mi tract_n 25_o in_o johan_n johan_n sundry_a reason_n render_v to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o real_a presence_n presence_n luk._n 22_o 19_o 19_o luk._n 22_o 19_o 19_o arist_n lib_n de_fw-fr memoria_fw-la memoria_fw-la rom._n 8_o 24_o 24_o heb._n 4_o 15_o 15_o luk._n 24_o 39_o 39_o act_n 1_o 9_o &_o 3_o 22_o 22_o catechism_n trident._n in_o exposit_n simbo_n apostol_n apostol_n joh_n 6_o 60_o 63_o 63_o what_o it_o be_v to_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n spiritual_o spiritual_o 1_o cor_fw-la xv_o 44_o 44_o sadeel_v de_fw-fr spirit_n man_v cap._n 1._o 1._o comparison_n between_o the_o bodily_a &_o spiritual_a eat_n eat_n matth._n 7_o xv_o xv_o matt._n 24_o 23_o 23_o 1_o cor_fw-la x_o 1_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d aug._n tom_n 6_o tract_n in_o joh._n 26._o &_o in_o psal_n 77_o gratian_n can_v inquit_fw-la 80._o 80._o math._n 9_o 15_o john_n 13_o &_o a_o act_n 1_o xi_o xi_o matt._n 〈◊〉_d 26_o 26_o john_n 6_o 50_o 50_o psalm_n 12_o 6_o &_o 19_o 9_o 9_o cyril_n 〈◊〉_d xi_o xi_o levit._n 17_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d act_n 15_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hom._n odis_n lib_n x_o virg._n aeneid_v lib._n 3_o plin._n nat_n hist_o lib._n y_o cap_z 〈◊〉_d ovid_n met._n lib._n 3._o 3._o 1_o cor_fw-la xv_o 54_o 54_o rom._n 6_o 9_o x_o x_o math._n 26_o 26_o 26_o 1_o sam_n 17_o x_o x_o conference_n day_n 3_o 3_o pighi_n hierar_fw-it li_z 3._o cap._n 3_o censur_n colon_n dial_n 4_o p2_n 112_o cusan_a epist_n 2._o &_o 7._o 7._o objection_n allege_v to_o maintain_v the_o real_a presence_n be_v answer_v answer_v bellar_n tomo_fw-la primo_fw-la objection_n 1_o answer_n answer_n 〈◊〉_d 17_o 11_o 11_o math._n 5_o 13_o 13_o john_n x_o 9_o 9_o john_n 15_o 1_o 1_o john_n 14._o 6_o 6_o l●k_v nineteeen_o 22_o 22_o john_n 15_o 1_o 1_o fish_n cont_n capti_fw-la babylon_n babylon_n lindan_n panopl_n lib_n 4._o 4._o tonst_a lib_n 1_o de_fw-fr sacr_n p._n 46._o 46._o gab_n biel._n in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d john_n 6_o 53_o objection_n answer_v answer_v joh._n 6_o 54_o 54_o john_n 6_o 32_o 32_o joh_n 6._o 35._o 44_o 44_o biel._n sect_n 84_o supper_n can_v niis_fw-la niis_fw-la hos_fw-la conse_n the_o euchar_n euchar_n two_o rule_n to_o be_v observe_v concern_v god_n omnipotency_n omnipotency_n math._n 3_o 9_o 9_o math._n 26_o 53_o 53_o matt._n 22_o 29_o 29_o aug._n de_fw-fr tempo_fw-la serin_fw-mi 119_o 119_o no_o contradiction_n be_v in_o god_n god_n 2_o cor_fw-la 1_o 19_o 19_o aug._n the_o trincap_n 15_o lib._n 15_o confess_v lib._n 12_o cap._n xv_o xv_o arist._n de_fw-fr interp_v li._n 1_o ca._n 5_o 5_o thom._n contra_fw-la gent._n lib._n 〈◊〉_d cap_n 84._o &_o 1._o 2_o cap_n 25_o object_n answer_n answer_n john_n 2._o xviii_o xviii_o exo_fw-la 4_o 5_o etc._n etc._n etc._n john_n 2_o 9_o 9_o no_o miracle_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n supper_n 〈◊〉_d in_o 1_o
cor_fw-la xi_o 28_o 28_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o 1._o book_n book_n genes_n 2_o 9_o etc._n etc._n etc._n hebru_n 4_o 2_o 2_o 1_o cor_fw-la 14_o 24_o 24_o what_o a_o sacrament_n be_v be_v math_n 23._o 2._o 3_o 3_o joh._n 4._o 2_o 2_o dcut._n 42_o 42_o 1_o cor_n x_o xvi_o xvi_o in_o a_o sacrament_n consider_v hispart_n and_o his_o use_n use_n the_o part_n be_v outward_a and_o and_o inward_a inward_a the_o outward_a part_n of_o a_o 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d the_o sign_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mat._n 28_o 19_o 19_o isaiah_n 6_o 6_o 7_o 7_o mark_n 1_o 5_o 5_o gen._n 17._o twelve_o twelve_o 1_o cor._n 3_o 7_o 7_o tit._n 3_o 56_o 56_o 1_o cor_fw-la x_o 3_o 3_o rome_n 8_o 32_o 32_o rom._n 14_o 23_o 23_o act_n 〈◊〉_d 36_o 36_o 3_o chief_a use_n of_o a_o sacram._n sacram._n roma_fw-it 4_o xi_o xi_o gen_n 17_o 1._o xi_o xi_o ephes._n 2_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mark_n 9_o 23_o 23_o rome_n 8_o xv_o xv_o num_fw-la 23_o 19_o 19_o 1_o john_n 3_o 23_o 23_o 1_o cor_o 6_o nineteeen_o xx_o xx_o 1_o pet_n 1_o 18_o 19_o 19_o the_o sacrament_n 〈◊〉_d the_o new_a testament_n be_v only_o two_o two_o 1_o cor._n x_o i_o 2_o 2_o act_n 20_o 27_o 27_o act_n xv_o x._o x._o au._n ust_o de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d ch_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 3_o cap_z 9_o 9_o pet_n lumb_n lib_n 〈◊〉_d 4_o dict_z 2._o 2._o the_o number_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n be_v false_a and_o forge_v forge_v confirmation_n no_o sacrament_n sacrament_n act_n 8_o 5_o xiiii_o xv_o xvi_o xvii_o xvii_o penance_n be_v 1._o 0_o sacrament_n sacrament_n i_o joh_n ay_o 7_o 7_o matrimony_n be_v no_o sacrament_n sacrament_n heb_n xiii_o 4_o 4_o gen_n 2_o xviii_o xviii_o i_o cor_o 6._o 7._o 7_o 37_o 37_o order_v no_o sacrament_n extreme_a unction_n no_o sacrament_n sacrament_n james_n 5_o 14_o 14_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o 2_o book_n book_n what_o b_o ap_fw-mi ap_fw-mi exod._n twelve_o 48_o 48_o ephe._n 5_o 26_o 26_o the_o outwa_o part_n of_o bapt_v be_v 4_o 4_o math._n 28_o 19_o 19_o math._n 28_o 19_o 19_o act_n 8_o 36_o 36_o bellar._n de_fw-fr sa_fw-fr bapt_n cap_n 26_o 26_o josh_fw-mi 5_o 5_o 5_o act_n 8_o 36_o 36_o infant_n have_v interest_n in_o baptism_n as_o well_o as_o their_o parent_n parent_n col._n 2._o xi_o xi_o act._n 16._o 15._o 33_o 33_o cor_fw-la 1_o i4_n 16_o mar._n x._o xiii_o xiiii_o xv_o xv_o psal_n 51_o 5_o 5_o eph._n 6_o 4_o 4_o the_o inward_a part_n of_o bap_n be_v four_o four_o math._n 28._o 19_o 19_o icor_n twelve_o twelve_o twelve_o act_n xvi_o xiiii_o xiiii_o act_n 2._o 38._o i_o pet._n 3_o xxi_o xxi_o eph_n 5_o 26_o 27_o 27_o the_o propoution_n betwixt_o the_o outward_a and_o inward_a part_n of_o bapc_n bapc_n three_o use_n of_o baptism_n baptism_n 1_o cor_fw-la 6_o xvii_o xvii_o gal_n 3_o xvii_o xvii_o mark_v 1_o 4_o 4_o deut_n x_o xvi_o xvi_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o 3._o book_n book_n 1_o cor_fw-la 10_o 16_o 16_o 1_o cor_o xi_o xx_o xx_o act_n 2_o 42_o 42_o 1_o cor_fw-la x_o 21_o 1_o cor_fw-la xi_o 25_o 25_o what_o the_o lo_o supper_n be_v be_v in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d supper_n consider_v his_o part_n and_o his_o use_n use_n the_o outw_n part_n be_v four_z four_z 1_o cor_fw-la xi_o 23_o 23_o luke_n 22_o 19_o 19_o tertul._n li_n 4_o cont_n 〈◊〉_d august_a cont_n adimaut_fw-fr c_o 12_o 12_o gen._n 17_o x_o x_o mar._n xiiii_o 22_o 22_o 1_o cor_fw-la x_o xvi_o xvi_o heb._n 4_o 15_o object_n answer_n answer_n aug_n epist_n 57_o ad_fw-la dardan_n dardan_n gal._n 3_o xv_o xv_o mat._n 26_o 26_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d revel_v 6_o 9_o x_o x_o 1_o cor_fw-la 11._o 20_o 20_o what_o consecration_n be_v be_v the_o inward_a part_n of_o this_o supper_n be_v 4_o 4_o rome_n 4_o 25_o 25_o revel_v i_o 4_o 4_o hebr._n xi_o 1_o 1_o luke_n 22_o 19_o 19_o john_n 6_o 54_o 54_o iioh_o 5_o twelve_o twelve_o titus_n ay_o i_o i_o the_o proportion_n betwixt_o the_o outward_a and_o inward_a part_n of_o the_o supper_n supper_n the_o useso_fw-mi the_o lord_n sup_v are_z three_z three_z 1_o pet._n 2_o 24_o 24_o ephe._n 5_o xxx_o xxx_o rom._n 8_o 38_o 38_o john_n xv_o 6_o 6_o 1_o cor._n x._o 17_o 17_o 1_o cor_fw-la xi_o 28_o 28_o jerem._n 17_o 9_o 9_o hag._n 2_o 14_o 14_o joh_n xvii_o 3_o 3_o 2_o cor_fw-la xiii_o 5_o 5_o psa6_n 26_o 6_o 6_o math_n 5_o 23_o 23_o rome_n twelve_o 18_o 18_o 2_o thes_n 2._o 2._o 1_o cor_o 14_o 25._o the_o mean_n of_o antichri_fw-la prevail_a 〈◊〉_d the_o world_n world_n bellar_n lib_n 4_o de_fw-fr notis_fw-la eccles_n cap_n 14_o 14_o bellar_n de_fw-fr imagine_v sanctor_n li_z 2_o c_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bel_n de_fw-mi euch_fw-ge lib_n 4_o cap._n 21_o 21_o bel_n de_fw-fr pont_n rome_n l_o 2c_n 31_o antichrist_n be_v a_o disguise_a enemy_n play_v the_o wolf_n in_o sheep_n clothing_n the_o subtle_a practice_n of_o the_o adversar_n to_o restore_v their_o kingd_a great_o decay_v decay_v eph._n 6_o 17_o 17_o prou._n 6_o 19_o n_o d._n alias_o noddy_n warn-word_n counter_a 1._o c._n 4_o pag._n 46_o the_o warn-word_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o encuonter_v harmony_n of_o church_n church_n euseb._n lib._n 8_o hystor_n cap_n 1_o the_o agreement_n betwixt_o the_o reform_a church_n about_o the_o sa._n sa._n iren._n 〈◊〉_d haeve_n lib._n 4._o 34._o the_o disagreement_n betwixt_o the_o reform_a church_n about_o the_o sup_n warr._n word_n encount_n c._n 14_o act_n of_o agreement_n print_v in_o latin_a the_o dissension_n of_o the_o papist_n among_o themselves_o popish_a writer_n joinwith_v we_o in_o the_o great_a controversy_n controversy_n judg._n 7_o 22_o 22_o deut._n 32_o 31_o popish_a quarrel_n one_o with_o another_o quest_n wherein_o the_o school_n man_n be_v at_o variance_n variance_n tom._n 2_o tra_z 2_o cap_z 3_o 3_o bel._n de_fw-mi euch_fw-ge lib._n 1_o cap._n 2_o 2_o gloss_n in_o can_v trious_a in_o ver_fw-la miscere_fw-la miscere_fw-la durand_n iniration_n dium_o offic_n lib_n 4._o 4._o bonaven_n in_o 4._o send_v do_v 13_o art_n 2._o quest_n 2_o 2_o antor_n pa_n 3_o tit_v 13._o c_o 6._o sect_n 3_o the_o defect_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d non_fw-la corrupta_fw-la emittuntur_fw-la 〈◊〉_d in_o 〈◊〉_d bus_fw-la sluxum_fw-la the_o say_n of_o a_o popish_a doctor_n doctor_n act_n &_o mon._n page_n 1691_o de_fw-fr consecrat_fw-mi do_v 2_o 2_o caietan_n tit_n 2._o tr_fw-la 2_o cap_z 5_o 5_o de_fw-fr consecr_n do_v 2_o can_v ego_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lumb_n lib_n 4_o send_v do_v 12._o 12._o in_o 4._o sent._n do_v xi_o que_fw-fr 3_o 3_o occam_fw-la lib._n 4_o quest_n 6_o 6_o in_o 4._o scent_n quest_n 6_o 6_o durand_n in_o lib._n 4._o sen._n do_v 11._o 11._o thom._n 3_o quest_n 75_o 75_o bel._n de_fw-fr enchar_n li._n 3_o ca._n 1_o 1_o sent._n lib_n 4._o do_v 13_o 13_o answ_v to_o art_n 23_o divis_fw-la 1_o 1_o joh_n de_fw-fr burg_n de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cap._n x_o x_o alex._n de_fw-fr hales_n part_n 4_o qu._n 〈◊〉_d 5_o memb_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d anton_n de_fw-fr defect_n 〈◊〉_d 3_o part_n sum_n 3_o 3_o 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr palude_fw-la palude_fw-la s._n hugh_n of_o clunice_n clunice_n conc_fw-fr col._n col._n de_fw-fr consecr_n do_v 2_o sect_n qui_fw-la bene_fw-la bene_fw-la thou_z walden_a tom_fw-mi 2._o qui_fw-fr de_fw-fr sacram_fw-la est_fw-la cap_n 46_o diversity_n how_o 〈◊〉_d be_v engender_v in_o the_o eucharist_n difference_n betwixt_o chri_fw-la body_n &_o the_o sacrament_n sacrament_n in_o repor_fw-la d._n x_o quest_n 3_o 3_o opus_fw-la 58_o c._n 13_o 13_o in_o repor_fw-la di_fw-mi 8_o quest_n 2_o foolish_a quest_n dispute_v by_o 〈◊〉_d the_o papist_n papist_n bel_n de_fw-mi euch_fw-ge lib_n 3_o cap_n x_o x_o tho._n aquin_n in_o 3_o cue_n 76_o be_v 30_o 30_o bel._n lib_n 1_o de_fw-fr sac_fw-la euch_fw-ge ca_fw-mi 5_o 5_o gab._n biel._n in_o lect_n 37_o in_o can_v cajetan_n in_o 3_o par_fw-fr though_o qu._n 73_o art_n 3_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n expound_v expound_v 1_o cor_n x_o 16_o 16_o tert_n cont_n martion_n li_n 4_o 4_o chrysost._n in_o mat._n hom_n 83_o 83_o be_o de_fw-fr illis_fw-la qui_fw-fr mit_fw-fr mist_n cap_n 9_o 9_o aug_n in_o psal_n 30_o &_o epi_fw-la 23_o ad_fw-la bon._n &_o con_v ada_z cap_z 12_o 12_o de_fw-fr consecr_n do_v 2._o 2._o gel_n as_o cont_n eutich_n eutich_n aug._n in_o ser_n ad_fw-la infant_n popish_a exposition_n of_o ch_z institution_n how_o the_o papist_n understand_v the_o break_v in_o the_o supper_n what_o the_o papist_n understand_v by_o the_o pronoun_a this_o this_o jos_n angl_n de_fw-fr mist_n mis_fw-fr c_o 17_o durand_n lib._n 4_o 4_o bel_n de_fw-mi euch_fw-ge lib_n 1_o cap_n 11_o 11_o thom_n lib_n 4_o send_v di_fw-mi 8_o be_v 6_o a_o brief_a collection_n of_o popish_a interpretation_n interpretation_n scholiast_n maximus_n maximus_n tertul._n con_v martion_n lib._n 4_o 4_o chryso_v in_o epist_n ad_fw-la caesar_n monach_n monach_n chryso_v in_o op_n imperf_n homil_n xi_o in_o johannem_fw-la johannem_fw-la bellar_n de_fw-fr sacr_n euchar_n lib._n 2_o cap_z 22_o four_o profitable_a observation_n unity_n oftentime_o out_o of_o the_o church_n church_n gen_n xi_o 6_o 6_o exod_a 32_o 3_o 3_o psal._n 2_o 1_o 2_o cu_z act_n 4_o 26_o 26_o num._n 16_o xi_o xi_o king_n 22_o 13_o 13_o mat._n 27._o 22_o 22_o reve_v 13_o 16_o 16_o gene._n 13_o 7_o 7_o luke_n 22_o 24_o 24_o math._n 20_o 24_o 24_o galat._n 2_o xi_o xi_o act_n 15_o 39_o 39_o act_n 11_o 2_o 2_o 1_o cor._n 1_o 11_o 11_o onuphr_n in_o chro._n rom._n pontif_n pontif_n platina_n platina_n sigon_n de_fw-fr regn_n ital._n li._n 6_o 6_o metrop_n lib_n 2_o cap._n 22_o 22_o jerem._n 2._o 28_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o 2._o book_n the_o sum_n of_o the_o 3._o book_n popish_a corruption_n in_o the_o supper_n supper_n conc._n try_v sess_v 22_o cap._n 2_o 2_o cerem_fw-la rome_n eccle_n lib._n 1_o sect_n 2_o 5_o 12_o 12_o xeno_fw-la grop_fw-fr lib._n 8_o 8_o quin._n curti_fw-la de_fw-fr rep_a gest_n alex._n lib_n 3_o jeremy_n x_o 8_o the_o pa._n god_n god_n 1_o cor_o 2_o xi_o xi_o tho._n part_n 3_o quest_n 8_o 3_o gerson_n cont_n flor_n extran_n de_fw-fr colobrat_fw-la missae_fw-la missae_fw-la 1_o qu._n 1_o can_v 5_o quis_fw-la 1_o qve_n 1_o can_v qoicun_fw-fr venalia_fw-la 〈◊〉_d templa_fw-la sacer_fw-la dote_v altaria_fw-la sacra_fw-la coronae_fw-la ignis_fw-la thura_fw-la preces_fw-la coelume_v venale_n deusque_fw-la mantu_n calam_n lib._n 3_o rom._n 14_o 23_o 23_o see_v book_n 2_o cap._n 5_o 5_o revel_v 18_o 4_o 4_o theocrit_n in_o bucol_n bucol_n conc_fw-fr try_v 〈◊〉_d 22_o cap_n 2_o can_v 1_o &_o 3_o the_o mass_n of_o s._n anthony_n anthony_n alan_o desac_o euch_fw-ge cap._n 32_o 32_o gab._n biel_n biel_n hebr_n 7_o 27_o 27_o sermon_n 91_o &_o 237._o &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d jerom._n in_o prou_z cap_n 11_o 11_o deut_n 16_o 10_o 10_o sueton_n in_o ca_o lig_n cap_n 25_o brevi_fw-la missam_fw-la fecit_fw-la fecit_fw-la catechume_n ni_fw-fr ni_fw-fr 1_o pet_n 3._o 15_o 15_o cyprian_a lib_n 3_o cpistol_n cpistol_n gregor_n dialog_n 〈◊〉_d 2_o cap_n 23_o 23_o what_o the_o mass_n be_v be_v how_o this_o sacrament_n may_v be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n sacrifice_n heb._n 9_o 15_o 16_o ch_z x_o x_o x_o luk_n 19_o 1_o 1_o 1_o cor_o xi_o 19_o 19_o 1_o thess._n 5_o 21_o 21_o heb._n 13._o 9_o
as_o we_o take_v it_o in_o these_o book_n be_v a_o sacrament_n be_v a_o visible_a sign_n and_o seal_v ordain_v of_o god_n whereby_o christ_n and_o all_o his_o save_a grace_n by_o certain_a outward_a rite_n be_v signify_v exhybit_v and_o seal_v up_o unto_o us._n this_o description_n be_v 〈◊〉_d teach_v we_o these_o point_n first_o that_o the_o force_n of_o the_o sacrament_n depend_v not_o on_o the_o worthiness_n or_o unworthynesse_n of_o the_o minister_n but_o upon_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n 3_o so_o that_o a_o evil_a minister_n may_v deliver_v the_o good_a thing_n of_o god_n and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o 2_o christ_n jesus_n baptize_v none_o but_o his_o disciple_n baptize_v that_o he_o may_v learn_v not_o to_o esteem_v of_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o fitness_n or_o unsitnesse_n of_o the_o mynister_n again_o 42_o none_o must_v add_v unto_o they_o none_o must_v take_v aught_o from_o they_o none_o must_v any_o way_n abuse_v they_o contrary_a to_o the_o institution_n and_o ordinance_n of_o god_n last_o we_o learn_v from_o hence_o that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o bare_a and_o naked_a sign_n of_o christ_n absent_v xvi_o but_o sure_a seal_n of_o god_n promise_n and_o of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v offer_v to_o all_o but_o receive_v only_o of_o the_o faithful_a so_o that_o the_o presence_n of_o ungodlye_a man_n meet_v we_o at_o the_o same_o table_n can_v hurt_v we_o in_o our_o worthy_a receive_n in_o a_o use_n sacrament_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v two_o thing_n his_o part_n and_o his_o use_n the_o part_n of_o a_o sacrament_n inward_a be_v partly_o outward_a and_o partly_o inward_a the_o outward_a part_n be_v 〈◊〉_d these_o four_o first_o the_o minister_n lawful_o call_v be_v necessary_o require_v 〈◊〉_d then_o the_o minister_n 〈◊〉_d not_o administer_v they_o or_o if_o pryvate_a person_n will_v administer_v they_o 19_o they_o sin_n against_o god_n the_o one_o for_o not_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o his_o call_n the_o other_o because_o he_o run_v beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o his_o call_n the_o second_o outward_a part_n 7_o be_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n consist_v of_o a_o commandment_n and_o a_o promise_n so_o that_o it_o be_v require_v of_o we_o to_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n to_o join_v the_o word_n with_o the_o sacrament_n and_o to_o discharge_v those_o from_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n which_o want_v the_o warrant_n of_o the_o word_n the_o three_o outward_a part_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v 5_o the_o sign_n for_o wheresoever_o there_o be_v a_o sacrament_n there_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v a_o outward_a element_n so_o that_o neither_o must_v we_o make_v a_o idol_n of_o the_o sign_n by_o advance_v it_o to_o high_a nor_o clean_o abolish_v it_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v by_o their_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n the_o last_o outward_a part_n be_v the_o twelve_o receiver_n so_o that_o the_o sacrament_n without_o their_o lawful_a use_n be_v no_o sacrament_n at_o all_o so_o long_o as_o the_o sign_n be_v reserve_v and_o not_o apply_v the_o inward_a part_n also_o be_v r_o four_o first_o god_n the_o father_n offering_z and_o apply_v christ_n jesus_n as_o 7_o sure_o as_o the_o minyster_n do_v the_o outward_a sign_n which_o be_v a_o great_a comfort_n to_o such_o as_o come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n the_o second_o inward_a part_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v 56_o the_o holy_a spirit_n work_v by_o the_o word_n so_o that_o we_o can_v never_o hear_v the_o word_n or_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n aright_o without_o the_o special_a direction_n and_o inspiration_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n neither_o must_v we_o hang_v upon_o extraordinary_a revelation_n which_o open_v a_o wide_a door_n unto_o all_o disorder_n inasmuch_o as_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o word_n the_o three_o inward_a part_n be_v jesus_n 3_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n of_o all_o sacrament_n now_o if_o god_n the_o father_n have_v give_v he_o unto_o we_o 32_o how_o shall_v he_o not_o with_o he_o give_v we_o all_o thing_n else_o let_v we_o therefore_o lie_v hold_v upon_o he_o especial_o in_o all_o discomfit_n and_o trouble_n when_o our_o faith_n be_v assault_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o our_o salvation_n the_o last_o inward_a part_n be_v the_o faithful_a receiver_n for_o except_o we_o 23_o send_v out_o say_v to_o bring_v christ_n home_n to_o dwell_v with_o we_o in_o our_o heart_n we_o shall_v in_o vain_a look_n to_o receive_v profit_n by_o the_o sacrament_n so_o that_o the_o reprobate_n who_o be_v vessel_n of_o wrath_n and_o the_o child_n of_o perdytion_n can_v receive_v christ_n albeit_o they_o partake_v the_o sign_n of_o christ._n as_o for_o the_o elect_a who_o be_v the_o lord_n seal_v up_o to_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n before_o their_o conversion_n and_o gather_v into_o the_o sheepfold_a of_o christ_n they_o also_o only_o receive_v the_o outward_a sign_n without_o christ_n inasmuch_o as_o they_o be_v without_o faith_n but_o after_o they_o be_v call_v with_o a_o holy_a call_n effectual_o and_o have_v receive_v to_o believe_v unfeigned_o they_o be_v partaker_n both_o of_o the_o sign_n and_o of_o the_o thing_n signify_v these_o be_v the_o outward_a and_o inward_a parces_fw-la now_o there_o 36_o be_v a_o fit_a proportion_n and_o agreement_n between_o these_o part_n each_o very_o apt_o answer_v the_o other_o for_o even_o as_o the_o minister_n by_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n offer_v and_o apply_v 〈◊〉_d the_o outward_a element_n to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o receiver_n so_o the_o father_n by_o the_o spirit_n offer_v and_o apply_v jesus_n christ_n invisible_o to_o the_o faithful_a receiver_n we_o show_v before_o that_o in_o a_o sacrament_n we_o be_v to_o observe_v two_o point_n his_o part_n and_o his_o use_n hitherto_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o all_o the_o part_n both_o such_o as_o be_v outward_a and_o such_o as_o be_v inward_a now_o it_o remain_v to_o handle_v his_o use_n the_o use_n of_o a_o sacrament_n sacram._n be_v chief_o three_o first_o xi_o to_o strengthen_v faith_n second_o xi_o to_o scale_v the_o covenant_n between_o god_n and_o we_o three_o 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v a_o badge_n of_o our_o profession_n and_o as_o a_o banner_n display_v to_o witness_v our_o warfare_n under_o our_o chief_a captain_n christ_n 〈◊〉_d if_o these_o be_v the_o true_a use_n and_o end_n of_o a_o sacrament_n than_o we_o learn_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o 23_o our_o own_o failinge_n and_o infirmity_n of_o faith_n that_o god_n refuse_v none_o for_o weakness_n and_o waver_a of_o faith_n xv_o that_o there_o be_v a_o assurance_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v attain_v unto_o in_o this_o life_n that_o as_o god_n evermore_o keep_v his_o promise_n with_o his_o people_n 19_o who_o be_v not_o as_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v lie_v nor_o as_o the_o son_n of_o man_n that_o he_o shall_v deceive_v so_o must_v we_o be_v careful_a to_o keep_v the_o article_n of_o 23_o agreement_n between_o god_n &_o we_o namely_o to_o believe_v his_o word_n to_o love_v our_o brother_n to_o obey_v his_o will_n last_o as_o our_o privilege_n be_v great_a to_o bear_v the_o badge_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n so_o it_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v not_o our_o own_o xx_o but_o be_v buy_v at_o a_o great_a price_n not_o with_o 19_o corruptible_a thing_n as_o silver_n and_o gold_n but_o with_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n as_o of_o a_o lamb_n unspotted_a and_o undefiled_a hitherto_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n now_o of_o the_o number_n of_o they_o as_o we_o understand_v the_o word_n for_o such_o as_o be_v seal_n of_o our_o communion_n with_o christ_n the_o sacrament_n two_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v two_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o more_o leave_v unto_o the_o church_n for_o christ_n teach_v no_o more_o 2_o sacrament_n to_o the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n deliver_v no_o more_o to_o the_o church_n who_o yet_o be_v faithful_a witness_n and_o reveil_v the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n 27_o without_o conceal_v and_o keep_v back_o of_o any_o doctrine_n which_o themselves_o have_v receive_v beside_o these_o two_o sacrament_n be_v altogether_o perfect_a and_o sufficient_a both_o to_o enter_v a_o christian_a 〈◊〉_d the_o church_n and_o to_o retain_v he_o continual_o in_o the_o same_o from_o this_o number_n of_o two_o sacrament_n we_o learn_v 〈◊〉_d to_o acknowledge_v the_o great_a love_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o who_o have_v ease_v we_o of_o the_o x._o heavy_a burden_n of_o infinite_a ceremony_n prescribe_v in_o the_o law_n and_o deliver_v we_o 9_o a_o few_o sacrament_n in_o stead_n of_o many_o second_o we_o see_v hereby_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o new_a and_o between_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a